THE EIVEE CONGO, FROM ITS MOUTH TO BOLOBO; WITH A GENERAL DESCRIPTION OF THE NATURAL HISTORY AND ANTHROPOLOGY OF ITS WESTERN BASIN. BY H. H. JOHNSTON, F.Z.S., F.R.GkS. WITH TWO ETCHINGS, AND OVER SEVENTY OTHER ILLUSTRATIONS AND THREE MAPS OF THE CONGO &c., BY THE AUTHOR. THIRD EDITION. LONDON: SAMPSON LOW, MARSTON, SEARLE, & R1YINGTON, CROWN BUILDINGS, 188 FLEET STREET, E.C. 1884. [All rights reserved.]LONDON: PRINTED BY WILLIAM CLOWES AND SONS, Limited, STAMl'OHD STREET AND CHARING CROSS.q f 6-7 J i> mn TO HENRY MORELAND STANLEY JSjxak w Jbtiijratei, IN MEMORY OF GREAT KINDNESS SHOWN TO ITS AUTHOR. ^050PREFACE, I believe a negro potentate once observed, with regard to the encroachments of the Anglo-Saxon race, that first came the missionary, then the merchant, and finally the British soldier. An almost analogous case to political conquest is the occupation by science of new fields of research. The pioneer is a man of the Livingstone or Stanley type, who rapidly traverses an unknown region, braves its dangers and endures its privations, and points out to his successors where his discoveries may be best taken up and worked out in detail. I' trust, there- fore, that as Mr. Stanley may claim to have been the great missionary of knowledge on the Congo, so I, in following humbly in his steps, may rank as the merchant who has brought back for the world’s inspection some samples from the unworked mines of information, whose presence the great explorer could discover, but whose wealth he had perforce to leave behind him on his rapid march. I have not ventured to make this work a record of novel ex- ploration, for I visited few places that were not already explored; nor of scientific research, for I lack the necessary ability. I have merely tried toVI PREFACE. produce with, pen and brush an ordinary guide-hook to the Congo, which may convey to intending tra- vellers or stay-at-home folks a fairly just im- pression of the main features of the great river. All that is written or drawn within has been directly done from Nature, and the faultiness in it arises more from incompleteness of detail than from incorrect outline. Nearly the entirety of the book has been compiled in the midst of my studying-ground. Many of the chapters here are reproduced exactly as they were jotted down in pencil, either when stopping to rest in some shady spot, or as I glided along the river in a canoe. All the illustrations have been photographed directly from my drawings, twenty- three of them being absolute facsimiles reproduced by the Typographic Etching Company. Before starting on my journey afresh, I desire to cordially thank the many friends who have helped me on the way. Mr. H. M, Stanley must rest content with a simple mention of his name: a catalogue of all his kindnesses would oblige my publishers to ex- tend this work to two volumes. Hardly less do I owe to Mr. Augustus Cohen, H.M.’s Consul for Angola and the River Congo, whose genial hospitality has done much to endear his place of residence, Loanda, to my memory. Also I have to thank the Commander of H.M.S. “ Rambler,” Captain the Honourable Algernon Littleton, for a long and pleasant cruise down the African coast; and to other African friends I tender my sincere acknowledgments, and withPREFACE. Vll pleasure record their names—Robert Scott Newton, Esq., British Vice-Consul at Sa5 Paul de Loanda ; Mijnheer A. de Bloeme, of the Dutch Trading Company on the Congo; and the Reverend T. J. Comber, of the Baptist Mission at Stanley Pool. Lastly, my sincerest thanks are due for much assistance and encouragement from H. W. Bates, Esq., Secretary to the Royal Geographical Society ; Philip Lutley Selater, Esq., Ph.D., Secretary to the Zoological Society ; Professor Oliver, of the Kew Herbarium; Edwin Arnold, Esq., C.SL, Editor of the Daily Telegraph; E. C. Rye, Esq., of the Field; and Carmichael Thomas, Esq., of the Graphic. H. H Johnston. London, February, 1884.NOTE. In the orthography of all the African words in this book, I have followed a simple phonetic system. The consonants are to be pronounced as in English, and the vowels as in Italian or Portuguese, viz.:— a = ah ; e = eh; i = ee; 6 = aw (o = oh) ; u = oo. I have only diverged from this system where the proper names from long nse have accustomed us to other spelling. Thus I write “the liiver Congo” and “Angola,” because for several centuries the Portuguese have spelt these names in the same manner. Properly, they should be, according to the simplest system, “Kongo” and “Ngola.”CONTENTS. CHAPTER I. FROM SAO PAULO DE LOANDA TO THE CONGO. PAGE Ambriz—Journey Overland to Kinsembo—An African Dinner—Books as against Brandy—Description of Kinsembo—Tbe Calemma—Yegetation—Journey Over- land to Mussera—A curious Monolith—Phytography of South West Africa—The Desert Boundary of the Tropics—Ambrizete—Baobabs—r-Fioral Beauties—The Trade Route—The Natives and Annexation—Cabega da Cobra—The Bush at Cabega da Cobra—The Jas- mines—Mushirongos—The Congo—Its Mouth—Colour of the Water—Banana Point—Kruboys—Krumanos and Kabindas—Apprenticeship and Slavery „ , 1 CHAPTER II. THE LOWER CONGO—BANANA. POINT TO VIVL Rissange—The Forest—Lissochilus gigcinteus—The Lagoons and their Inhabitants—A Vegetable Venice—Birds— A Native Village—Pets—Antelopes—A Crocodile Ad- venture—Ponta da Lenha—The River forming its Delta —Boma—Underhill — Mussuka—Hell’s Cauldron—-A Visit to Stanley—Belgique Creek—Vivi—Stanley and the Natives—The Dinner Party—One of Stanley’s Stations—Life at Vivi . . 29X CONTENTS. CHAPTER III. PALLABALLA AND YELL ALA. PAGE Native Villages—Agriculture—Domestic Animals—Houses ■—Scenery—The Livingstone Inland Mission — Eiote the Language of the Congo—The neighbouring Kings — Native Superstitions—Native Feelings towards Christianity— King Kongo-Mpaka — Cucurbits—The Lufu—Return to Vivi—Journey to Yellala— Nguvi Mpanda and its amiable Chief—The Scenery on the Road—The Grass — Grasshoppers—Kai—Dracaenas— The Chief of Yellala—Ntete Mbongo’s Toilette—J ourney to the Falls—The Falls of Yellala—A Fish Breakfast —Return to Yivi ....... 59 CHAPTER IV. VI v I TO ISANGILA. My Zanzibaris—The Grass—Nguvi Mpanda—Behaviour of the Children—The Valley of the Loa—Pleasures of Bathing—The Camoensia—Sadika Banza—A Pet Fowl —The African Flora—The Bnzi—The Bundi—Rain— Awkward Travelling—The Lulu—After the Storm— Hornbills and the Ducks—The Ngoma Falls—Stanley’s Name of Bula Matade—The Future of Ngoma— Isangila ........ 87 CHAPTER V. ISANGILA TO MANYANGA. The Isangila Fall—Position of the Village—A Native Market—The Manioc—Cookery for Explorers—Ground- nut Oil — Toffee — Captain Tuckey’s Expedition — Journey to Manyanga—Riverside Scenery—Islands—CONTENTS. XI PAGE A Whirlpool—The Pratincoles—Mbote—Lieutenant Nilis—Disturbance at Manyanga—Different Mediums of Exchange—A Native Diet—Woman in Africa— Mlongo-Mlako—Ntombo Mataka Falls . ^ , 111 CHAPTER VI. MANYANGA TO LEOPOLDVILLE (STANLEY POOL). Koad to Lutete—The Chief Lutete—Ravines on the Road to Stanley Pool—The Edwin Arnold River—A sudden Storm—Kindness of the Zanzibaris—An Orgie of Pine-apples—Trapping Bats—A Fetish-House—Cross- ing the Inkissi—A Leopard’s Footprints—Carved Logs—The Wa-mbuno—Ngoma—Leopoldville—The Missions—The Food Question—The Future of Leo- poldville . . . , . . . .139 CHAPTER VII. STANLEY POOL. Scenery of the Pool—Dover Cliffs—Brazzaville—Kallina Point—Death of Lieutenant Kallina—The Chiefs round Stanley Pool—Ngaliema—Boat Voyage to Bolobo —A Kinkshasha Village—A Conversazione—Hy- phsene Palms—Smoked Fish—An African Rain-storm —Importance of Diet—Hippopotami—Grey Parrots— Kimpoko—A climbing Palm . . . . .165 CHAPTER VIII. STANLEY POOL TO THE WABUMA. Native Canoes—Butterflies—Flora and Fauna of the River- banks—Banana-cooking—Ngui—Narrow escape from a Hippopotamus—The Birds—The Native Dogs—Lieu ternXll CONTENTS. PAGE ant Janssen—Masnta—A Bay an si Village—Native Hair-dressing—Personal Decoration—A Sacred Tree— Mysterious Slaves . . . . . .193 CHAPTER IX. TO BOLOBO. Mbongo—French Flags at Mbamo—Embe—Value of Salt —Footprints of Hippopotami—Sand-banks and Islands —Bolobo—The Great Chief Ibaka—The Mosquitoes— A Royal Visit—A Drinking Ceremony—Ibaka’s pecu- liar Hat—Houses at Bolobo—A Sketching Adventure —The Fetish Man—His Duties and Occupations— Herds of Elephants and Buffaloes—Animals of the District—Metals—Monkoli Topaz . . . .217 CHAPTER X. MSUATA. Return from Bolobo—Itimba—A Burial Scene—A Village decorated with Skulls—Euphorbias—Mbongo again— Mukemo—The Outlet of the Lawson—Join Lieutenant Janssen—Life at Msuata—The Haunt of the Elephant— The Blue Plantain Eater—Birds and Crocodiles—The Clouds—The Storm—A visit to Gobila—Makole under Treatment—A Trap for the Leopard—His Death . 243 CHAPTER XI. HOMEWARDS. The Start for Stanley Pool—A Floating Mimosa Branch —A Troop of Elephants—Ba-yansi on the March—A. Blood-brother—Chased by Hippopotami—Juma brings News from Home—The Hills at Stanley Pool TheirCONTENTS. Xlll Trees and Flowers—Coquilhat’s Welcome at Kimpoko —Arrive at Kinshasha—A Palaver—Dualla, Stanley’s Prime Minister — Bankwa’s Speech. — My Stay at Leopoldville—Manyanga again—Boat-voyage to the Sea—Welcome at Boma—Arrival at Banana—Parting with my Zanzibaris—Back to Civilization . . .279 CHAPTER XII. CLIMATE AND NATURAL HISTORY. The Unhealthy Districts—Drinking-water—Precautions against Sunstroke—How to live on the Congo—The Excessive Moisture—The Rainy Season—“ Smokes “ Little Dries ”—The Dry Season—The African Spring -—Early Summer—Violence of the Storms—The Har- vest—Geology of the District—Metals—Flora and Fauna—The River not a Natural Boundary—Botanical Orders chiefly represented—The Palms—List of cha- racteristic Specimens collected—Colour and Fragrance 301 CHAPTER XIII. NATURAL HISTORY. Entomology of the District—Lepidoptera—Their easy Capture—Butterfly Bait—List of Species most common —Beetles—Locusts—Ephemeridoe—The Mason Wasp —Ants — The Jigger—Flies — Spiders — Mollusca— Crustacea — Ichthyology — Batrachians ■— Reptiles — Crocodiles — The Spur-win ged Plover — Tortoises— Lizards—Snakes ....... 327 CHAPTER XIV. NATURAL HISTORY—ORNITHOLOGY. The Fin -foot — Frigate Birds — G annets — Pelicans — Aquatic Birds at Stanley Pool—Gypohierax VultnresXIV CONTENTS. PAGK —Hawks—Rails and Plovers—The Crocodile’s Friend —A Plover Family — Pigeons — Parrots—Rollers— Crows—List of Birds noticed on the Congo . . 349 CHAPTER XV. NATURAL HISTORY—MAMMALS. Monkeys — Mandrills — The Gorilla — Lemnrs — The Leopard—The Lion—Tiger-cats’—Hyaenas—The Civet Cat—The' Genet Cat—Jackals—The Manatee—The Elephant — Size of Tusks — The Hippopotamus — A Rogue Hippopotamus—The Rhinoceros—The Buffalo— Antelopes—List of Mammalia noticed on the Congo . 375 CHAPTER XYI. THE PEOPLE OF THE CONGO. The Dwarf Race—The Upper Congo Races—The Mushi- rongos—The Bakongo—Conduct and Morality—Phallic Worship—The Nkimba—The Sacred Language—Art of Medicine—Domestic Life—Hairiness of African Races—Early Man—Clothing—Cicatrization—Hair- dressing—Features—Character—Ceremonies—Educa- tion—Marriage—Burial— Food—Domestic Animals— Crops—Houses—Musical Instruments—Population- Progress ......................................... CHAPTER XVII. THE LANGUAGES OF THE WESTERN CONGO. Kongo—Ki-teke—Ki-buma—Ki-yansi . 443LIST OP ILLUSTRATIONS. PAGE Baobab coming into Leaf and Flower ... 3 Hyphene Guineensis . . . . . . .10 Pillar at Mussera . . . . . . .11 Crows on the beach at Banana . . . . .23 A “ Kru-Boy ”........................26 Mangrove Roots at Banana . . . . .28 Lissochilus Giganteus . . . . . .31 Kissange from the River . . . . . .33 POGONORHYNCUS GEOGASTER . . . . . .37 YlVI FROM THE ISANGILA ROAD ..... 49 The Lower Congo seen from Yivi .... 53 Orchids ......... 58 Muss^inda grandiflora . . . . . .61 Hen-house ......... 63 Congo house ........ -64 Mouth of Mposo River . . . . . .66 Chief of Nguvi Mranda . . . . . .73 Dracaena Sapochinowki . . . . . .76 Yellala Falls . . . . . • .81 Congo Grasses ........ 89 Baphia nitida ......... 113 First Isangila Fall . . . . . . .114 Second Isangila Fall , . . . . .115XVI LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS. PAGE The Giant Kingfisher (Ceryle maxima) . . . 122 The River Congo seen from the Plateau at Man yang a 129 Mlongo-mlako, King of Dandanga . . . .134 The “ Widowed One” ...... 136 A wild Pineapple . . . . . . .141 Scenery near Lutete . . . . . .143 The Port of Leopoldville . . . . . .163 Floating reed island on Stanley Pool . . .168 “Brazzaville”................. 170 Hyphcene palms . . . . . . . .180 An Inhabitant of Kimpoko ...... 187 A Queen of Kimpoko . . . . . .188 The northern end of Stanley Pool . . . .189 Map of Stanley Pool......................192 Hyphcene ventricosa . . . . . . .195 High-wooded banks of Congo............196 Pistia stratiotes . . . . . . .219 The Chief of Embe ....... 223 The Friendly Village.....................227 House in Bolobo ....... 237 Euphorbia Hermentiana ...... 245 The shore at Mukemo . . . . . .252 A LANDSCAPE ON THE BpPER CONGO .... 261 Crinum Zelanicum.........................280 The Island opposite Kinshasha ..... 292 Camoensia Maxima ....... 303 A Python ......... 329 Polypterus 340 ScHIZORHIS GIGANTEA......................351 A Galago ......... 375LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS. xvii # PAGE A Cobus Antelope . . . . . .385 1. Mu-yansi. 2. Mu-teke, 3. Mu-shi-kongo . . . 395 A Nkimba ......... 406 A M-buma, A Mu-yansi . . . . . .413 An Example of Cicatrization . . . . .420 A Congo Sheep ........ 428 Ba-teke chair . . . . . . . . 432 1. Pottery on Upper Congo. 2. An Antelope-horn Trumpet. 3. A Powder-flask , 433 A Native Lyre and Ba-yansi Knives .... 434 Ba-yansi Chopper, and Axe of Authority belonging to a Ba-teke Chief ^ . . . . . .435 A Native of the Lower Congo ..... 440 The Fetish and Sacred Lance of Ganchu < . . 443 MAPS. PAGE Physical Map of the West Coast of Africa . . 13 The Congo Eiver from its Mouth to Bolobo End of Booh ETCHINGS. Ibaka, King of Bolobo ..... Frontispiece The River Congo before the Falls of Yellala To face 80A JOURNEY UP THE RIYER CONGO. CHAPTER I. FROM SAO PAULO DE LOAN DA TO THE CONGO. Ambriz—Journey overland to Kinsembo—An African Dinner— Books as against Brandy—Description of Kinsembo—The Calemma—Vegetation—Journey Overland to Mussera—A curious Monolith—Phytography of South West Africa— The Desert Boundary of the Tropics — Ambrizete — Baobabs—Floral Beauties—The TradeEoute—TheNatives and Annexation—CABEgA da Cobra—The Bush at CABEgA da Cobra—The Jasmines—Musiiirongos—The Congo—Its Mouth—Colour of the Water—Banana Point—Kruboys— Krumanos and Kabindas—Apprenticeship and Slavery. BCHAPTER I. FROM SAO PAULO DE LOANDA TO THE CONGO. In the month of October, 1882, I left Loanda to carry out a long- cherished idea of visiting the river Congo, to study its little-known natural history, and to endeavour to portray as accurately as possible the Jandscapes and inhabitants of lands which photography had not yet reached, and where no student of nature had ever penetrated. Having obtained a passage on board a Dutch trading steamer, I proceeded up the coast north- b 2 BAOBAB COMING INTO LEAF AND FLOWER.4 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. wards to Arnbriz, tbe last possession of the Portu- guese province of Angola, and lying distant from Loanda some sixty miles. When we reached this place, early in the morning, I left the steamer for a time, intending to journey some distance along the coast by hammock, in order to gain a closer ac- quaintance with the character of the country that here borders the sea. Carriers are not always easily obtained at Arnbriz, and they were even more difficult to secure at this particular time, for they found such lucrative work in bringing coffee from the interior to tbe merchants’ stores that they little cared for the more fatiguing task of carrying a white man in a hammock to Kinsembo. The day passed in listless and hopeless waiting at the house of an English trader, and I began to think it would be necessary to resign myself to the disagreeable thought of passing a night with the fleas and mos- quitoes which Arnbriz lavishes on all new-comers; but as the sun began to sink very near the sea horizon, a sufficient number of men were collected one by one, a hammock was borrowed, and I gladly shook the dust of Arnbriz off my feet, and settled comfortably into the half-drowsy state which the swaying motion of the hammock produces. Our path lay for some distance along the sea-shore, right in amongst the foam of the breakers, whose deafening roar made the ears ring. Here, safe from their cruel force, on dear Mother Earth, I could look with wonder and interest on the irresistible roll and ter-FROM SAO PAULO DE LOANDA TO THE CONGO. 5 rible rebound of tbe waves, which render landing on these unprotected coasts almost impossible in any- thing but a surf-boat. Half an hour’s jog-trot on the part of the men brought us to tbe river Loge, which at present is the northern boundary of the Portu- guese possessions in Lower Guinea. The clumps of mangrove which border its narrow mouth are very fine and picturesque, and afford shelter to many water birds, which were busily fishing for their evening meal whilst we waited to cross the river. A native canoe came from the opposite side, and ferried us over in two journeys; and then, leaving the river, we passed through several black and fetid marshes where the branches of the mangroves grew so low that they often took me by the chin and nearly jerked me out of the hammock. As the ground grew more solid and strong, forests of “ candelabra ” euphorbias, ugly, bewitched-looking things, lined the way, and continued to be the only vegetation visible till we reached Kinsembo. Here, naturally, I was received with that cordial welcome and hearty hospitality which are extended by all English traders in West Africa to the stranger, no matter what his position or nationality may be. In a comfortable airy room, with an organ at one end, and many pictures on the walls, we sat down, friends of five minutes’ standing, to as good a dinner, as the tinned provisions of Kinsembo could produce. In this place, where native food is almost non- existent, save an occasional water-buck (Cobus ante-6 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. lope) or a dish of little rock oysters, the European inhabitants live nearly exclusively on provisions sent out from England, and live well withal. It takes a stranger to the coast quite by surprise to see the excellence and variety of these preserves; and except that one longs occasionally for a little fresh salad, the bill of fare presented by the great purveyors of tinned provisions is quite an appetising one in Africa. On one of the evenings spent at Kinsembo, we had a dinner much as follows, the menu of which I append for the consolation of such of my readers as may be proceeding to the West Coast of Africa. Mock Turtle Soup. Salmon Cutlets. Lobster. Curried Eabbit. Boast Beef. Boiled Mutton. (with preserved potatoes). Game patty. Asparagus. Plum pudding. Peaches. Strawberries. . Tea. Biscuits. All these things, except the rice eaten with the curry, came out of tins, and the plum-pudding and asparagus were especially good. All merchants on the coast do not live thus; it is only among the English trading-houses that the employers feed their employes so well. On theFROM 8AO PAULO DE LOANDA TO THE CONGO. 7 other hand, it is with sorrow to be confessed that amongst the English traders insobriety still lingers, although latterly this evil has been successfully combated by the generous supply of good aerated drinks, and light German beer. In Africa alcohol is less needed than anywhere else, and it is good nourishing food that is required to restore the impoverished blood, not fiery, fever-giving drinks. The mental depression consequent on the enervating climate is more healthily dispersed by interesting and entertaining literature, especially when this is enjoyed together with a cup of fragrant coffee, than by the continual glasses of grog, the “ nips ” of brandy, the “ gins and bitters,” the “ mata-bichos,” and “chin-chins,” which, to react on the deadening senses, have to be continually increased in alcoholic strength. If, as one who has visited most parts of the West African Coast, from the Gambia to Mossamedes, and enjoyed hospitality from many of the great African trading companies, I might give a word of advice to their managers in Europe : I would say, “ Send out plenty of books. Be- member that the mind in Africa runs more risk of being starved than the body, and that for those to whom the wonderful country in which they are residing does not itself seem a great book spread open for them to read by Mother Nature, the flagging spirits, the fatal home-sickness, and the dull depression of the brain are best diverted, not by constant sips of spirits, but by bright novels, by8 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVJQR CONGO.' humorous essays, and by the fairy-tales of science that our current literature can so readily supply.” Then, when the oil-lamp is lit, and the dusky African night is chased even from the windows by the bright reflections in the glass, the pale and languid European can forget the strange weird things outside—the marshes with their low white poisonous mist, the riotous “ niggers ” dancing round their fires, streaming and gleaming with perspiration, the great night-moths and the uncomely bats—in the beautiful creations and merry thoughts of our master-minds. In having chosen Kinsembo for the text of this disquisition, I have not meant to imply that the worthy Englishmen there are more inclined to alcoholic consolation than elsewhere. Quite the contrary, in fact; and I am glad to say that it is for that reason a brighter place than many I know of farther north; but as it is one of the few great trading settlements that I encounter on my way to the Congo, I seize this opportunity of making known what, as an old African, I feel to be a distinct and easily remedied want amongst the English “factories” in West Africa—more books, less brandy. Kinsembo is a flourishing place as regards trade, and has doubtless diverted much of the coffee, ivory, and india-rubber which should have come to Ambriz, for it was formed by the settlement of many trading- houses who left Ambriz and Portuguese Africa in order to be free from import and export duties.FROM SAO PAULO DE LOANDA TO THE CONGO. 9 The different buildings of Kinsembo all stand on the summit of a range of high red cliffs, which, end at the mouth of a little river in' a long rocky point. This river, of course, has a sand bar, otherwise its mouth would form the harbour so sadly needed. As it is, both the landing and embarking of cargo is attended with considerable risk, as the breakers are almost more to be dreaded here than anywhere on the south-west coast. In the time of “ calemma ” (the Portuguese give this name to the great roll which every now and then comes across the Atlantic) the beach of Kinsembo is a grand sight to see—from the cliffs above. Wave after wave comes in like a race-horse, dashes itself on the beach, gathers itself up, and rolls back again to meet the one that follows. Sometimes these waves will come in one on top of the other, but generally it is every third wave which is the worst, and, after this giant billow has expended its force, there is an interval of comparative calm, in which the anxious boatmen strive to put off. Land- ing in a “ calemma ” is, I believe, less dangerous than putting out to sea. It is, however, a mauvais quart cl’heure, full of suppressed excitement and anxiety. The great surf-boat, with neither bow nor stern, so that it can go backwards or forwards at will, highly recurved at both ends, and like the crescent moon in shape, is steered by a man standing upright in the seaward end of the boat, and using as his rudder a long paddle. He approaches to within a certain distance from the shore, and then, after10 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. cautiously waiting liis time, selects a big roller and rides in with irresistible speed on to the beach, where the boat is immediately seized by the rowers, who have jumped out, and hauled up out of reach ere the retreating wave can roll it back to destruction. Kinsembo is not quite so barren as the Ambriz coast, but vegetation is still very sparse. Hyphaene palms, however, first make their appearance here as you approach this region from the south, and there are also strangely stunted bao- babs (by some thought to be a different species) growing on the cliffs, and acoarse-looking con- volvulus straggles over the sea-shore, intermixed with the Calabar bean. The usual park-like scenery of the interior is some six miles distant from the sea coast. Kinsembo is one of the first points proceeding northwards from Angola, where the influence of the Congo region begins to be felt. The few native tribes more resemble the Ba- Kongo in their dialects than the neighbouring Bunda people to the south. The journey overland to Mussera, the next trading Hyphame Guineensis.FROM SAO PAULO DE LOAN DA TO THE CONGO. 11 settlement, occupies about five hours’ travelling on foot or in a hammock, but I spent some time longer on the way, as I stopped to sketch the curious pillar of Mussera, a great pointed stone, poised on a smooth slab of rock, and crowning the top of a small emi- nence, from whence it is visible a long way off, both PILLAR AT MUSSERA. inland and out at sea. I cannot guess at the cause of this curious monolith, except that I think it impro- bable that it owes its origin and position to any act of man. There are many similar stones in different parts of the Lower Congo countries. There is a little vegetation at the base of the low hill on which the12 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. pillar stands, but it is the usual euphorbia and aloe mixture, and there is no bush capable of affording shade, so I made my sketch of the monolith as quickly as possible, and then hurried on once more through the blazing sun. We passed by many plantations of manioc, and emerged at last on the sea- shore, where, sheltered by a few low jasmine bushes, I halted for a short time to rest and refresh myself with a frugal lunch ; after which I started once more and reached the Dutch factory * at Mussera in time for dinner. The country round this settlement is much like Kinsembo in character. The same coarse grass, sparsely scattered bushes, and euphorbias ; but here the rich vegetation of the interior is only three miles from the coast, and as the reader will notice, it is gradually approaching the sea, until at Cabe£a da Cobra the last traces of desert influence will vanish and a tropical wealth of flora reassert its sway. There are certain curious points in the phytography of South-Western Africa which are best shown in this accompanying map. I have endeavoured here to exhibit more clearly the distribution and compara- tive abundance of vegetation which may be observed in travelling over Western Tropical Africa, and more especially in the country lying between the river Cunene and the Upper Congo. From Sierra * All the trading establishments on the West African Coast, are called “ factories,” more in the sense of the Portuguese word “ feitoria,” a place of business.OgoweR. Ryaiuja KwxbjJt.. JMusserrmo Fhlst’inbteS Ambrnz\ SVPaxd de Losmcii Heruj uelLtiVeVur C.Gross i From> the Thoceethings of the Royal Geographical* Society. 188, C.Lcpez sy r^\ Cabefo da tobnaxs^ Amhrizette 15° Mossamedes KBTTSICAL MAP OP WEST COAST OF AFRICA l»jr BLH. Johnston. Jtense Forest. I ■ ' ■- ! Snvnnnnh with. OiLPrUms. I 1 Savannah,. I____] Scanty ~Vegelation. 1 I - . Desert.FROM 8AO PAULO BE LOANDA TO TEE CONGO. 13 Leone to the river Ogowe along the coast the one prevailing landscape is that of endless forest. This is, in fact, part of the forest region-—the forest belt which has a distinctive fauna and flora, and which extends eastwards, near the equator, more than half- way across Africa to Labe Victoria Nyanza and the western shores of Tanganika. This is the country of the anthropoid apes, which are found equally near Sierra Leone, and on the Welle, and near the Upper Nile. But when the mouth of the Ogowe is passed, the forest begins to retreat from the coast,* and is gradually succeeded by more open savannah scenery, so characteristic of the major part of Africa, and so happily described by older travellers as “ park- like,” a designation which its open grassy spaces and formal groups of shady trees amply justify. Such is the country at Loango, Kabinda, and along the Lower Congo up to Stanley Pool. But a little to the south of the Congo embouchure the park-like scenery in its turn begins to retire from the sea, somewhere about Cabe£a da Cobra, a place I have already mentioned, and there follows a much uglier region of sparse vegetation and less abundant rain- fall. Of such is the country around Loanda, where scarcely anything but euphorbias, baobabs, and aloes are growing, and where there is often less than two months’ rain in the year. This harsh country continues along the coast for some distance until about the 13th parallel, where it in its turn trends * Except where it follows the courses of rivers.14 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. off towards the interior, and absolute desert takes its place and continues uninterruptedly as far as the Orange River. In a journey from Mossamedes to the river Cunene, in 15°-16° S. latitude, you may successively pass through these three last phases of scenery, and after crossing a zone of absolute desert, enter a region of sparse vegetation, and finally arrive at the beautiful undulating coun try of scattered forest and grassy plains which only reaches the sea as far north as the Congo mouth. The four districts I have just described may be said to vary from almost absolute sterility to transcendent richness of vegeta- tion : perhaps the word sterility is hardly a true one, as the desert soil is quite capable of producing ample crops ; it is merely the rainfall that is lacking. The sandy wastes between Mossamedes and. the Orange River grow little but the strange Wdwitscliia mira- bilis and a few stunted Bauhinias; in the succeeding region the euphorbias and aloes are the principal occupants of the soil, with an occasional baobab, mimosa, or fig. In the park-like country the forest trees are too numerous and varied to catalogue; but amongst them may be noticed the beautiful Hyphsene palm, the oil-palm as far as 10° S., the cotton wood, the baobab, gigantic mimosas, figs, and a variety of splendid trees belonging to the papilio- naceous order. This is the most typical region of Africa, and it is the country of the large game animals. The rhinoceroses, zebras, giraffes and many antelopes never enter the forest belt thatFROM SAO PAULO DE LOANDA TO THE OONGO. 15 clothes so much of Western Africa, and which is the grand climax of vegetable development where, with/ ample space, continual rain, and an equatorial sun, plant-life flourishes and rules supreme above the animal world. There is a curious resemblance as regards sterility and paucity of rainfall between the coasts of South- West Africa, West Australia and Western South America. They are all more dr less of a desert character, whereas Queensland, South-East Africa and Brazil are richly endowed with vegetation. Further, it is an interesting fact, and one which can only be briefly noticed here, that in looking over a physical map of the world, one cannot fail to remark how, both north and south of the equator, the tro- pical is separated from the temperate zone by a* more or less well-defined region of desert or barren steppe. The Sahara, the deserts of Syria, Arabia, Persia and Sinde ; the great desert of Gobi, and the barren wastes in China and Thibet separate the fertile regions of temperate Europe, Africa, and Asia from the zone of tropical rain, just as in North America, almost in the same latitudes, are salt plains, deserts, and the hideous lifeless tracts in Northern Mexico. South of the equator, we have in South America the desert of Atacama and the grassy steppes of the Gran Chaco, and of the northern states of the Argentine Republic; the sterility of Central Australia, and finally, in South Africa, the Kalahari Desert which extends northwards to Mossamedes,16 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. and makes its influence felt on the western coast line nearly to the vicinity of the Congo. I rejoined the Dutch steamer at Mussera and pro- ceeded to Ambrizete, where there are many factories belonging to English, French, and Dutch companies. The inland scenery at about a mile from the coast is beautiful and park-like, though near the shore it is still a sandy tract with scanty vegetation. This soon yields to beautiful prairies, dotted with clumps of fine trees and radiant with many wild flowers, principally yellow ground orchids, white Commelynce, and bright saffron-coloured convolvuli. The baobabs (Adansonia) in the distance seem to be fine stout beech-trees in an English park, and their leaves are tender and green, just budding out under the October rains. From their branches, hanging straight down by a thread-like stalk, are the fair white blossoms with wax-like petals and a mass of feathery, filamentous stamens. These flowers soon drop, and their snowy whiteness is tarnished with yellow stains and bruises as they lie in heaps at the foot of the swollen, gouty trunk. The “ calabash,” the large fruit that slightly resembles the outer husk of the cocoa-nut in shape, remains on the tree simul- taneously with the freshly-opened flowers, and looks much like a large bat, folded in its wings and hanging to the branches. Thirsty with my noonday wandering xxnder the sparse shade that the half-open leaves afforded, I jumped at a calabash, dragged it down and broke it open. Then I took out the pinky-FROM SAO PAULO DE LOANDA TO TOE CONGO. 17 white pith and chewed it, finding therein a most pleasant, thirst-quenching acid. The monkeys are very fond of this pith ; so much so that the fruit of the baobab is sometimes called monkey bread. Adansonia digitata, the “ Imbundeiro ” of the Portuguese, the tree generally known as “ baobab ” (though whence this name comes, I know not), ranges over all Africa between the Sah&ra and the Kalahari Desert, and an allied species is found in Australia. Roughly speaking, it is a huge mallow, and is rather a gigantic plant than a tree, for the interior of its great swollen trunk is all spongy pith and not firm wood. The candelabra euphorbias, so common on the Angola coast, still linger on about Ambriz, although they are handsomer and glossier in this more favoured region, and have lost that dingy colour and distorted form that characterise them farther south.* The aloes are all in blossom, and their tall, orange-red flower-spikes make a very pretty point amid the yellow orchids and the yellow-green grass. The river at Ambrizete is picturesque, its mangrove woods are exceptionally fine, and as the ground rises to some height inland a fine view of the stream may he obtained as it meanders sluggishly through massive groves. On the snags by the water-side many aquatic birds are perched, and up the steep * The candelabra euphorbia (Euphorbia candelabrum) is ne\er found farther northward on the south-west coasf, or anywhere on the Congo. C18 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. river banks there is plenty of greenery amid which stand out, like hawthorn in May, the snowy sprays of jasmine flowers which fill the air with such a balmy perfume. In the shallow pools and marshes are “mud-fish.”* I notice them here for the first time so far south. The Ambrizete River (which is properly called Nbrlsh) has rather a long course, and rises some little distance south-east of Sao Salvador on a plateau 2500 feet high, whence it descends in magnificent cas- cades, called the “ Arthington Falls,” into the plain below, and wends a tortuous way to the sea. Its upper waters were first visited and described by one of the Baptist missionaries from Sao Salvador, and he named its falls after a well-known English phil- anthropist. As Ambriz is the great coffee port, so Ambrizete is the outlet for the ivory trade, and has been for many years. As the reader will see farther on, the ivory road starts from Stanley Pool, passes through Sao Salvador and debouches at Ambrizete. From Ambrizete, or some neighbouring settlement, the pine-apple has been introduced along the trade routes far into the interior of the southern Congo region, and it is probable that limes, oranges, maize, sugarcane, manioc, and many other recent addi- tions to native agriculture originally started from here, where the Portuguese traders brought them from Brazil, and, following the arterial trade * Anoplithalmus.FROM SAO PAULO HE LOANDA TO THE CONGO. 19 routes, quickly overran these hitherto poorly-fed countries. The natives of Ambrizete are very turbulent, and* decidedly opposed to any idea of annexation or protection by a European power. For this reason no white man is allowed to penetrate more than a few miles into the interior from Ambrizete, and scientific explorations are indistinguishable in their eyes from political reconnaissances. In this way the region lying between Sao Salvador and the coast, vaguely named Ngoje, remains a terra incognita to Europeans. Wending my way north- wards from Ambrizete I touched at different spots where factories were established, but none of them offered anything worthy of note until I reached a small settlement about fifty miles south of the Congo, called Cabeya da Cobra (the “ head of the snake ”). This to my long-starved eyes seemed a charming place. At last the hideous influence of the south coast was over, and a rich and varied vegetation grew down to the very waves. There was a stretch of low-lying land about a mile or less in width, immediately next the sea, overgrown with dense bush, and, in fact, a sort of natural botanical garden with many specimens of the African flora displayed with prodigal abundance. There were groups of umbrageous trees (some of * This is the opinion of the white traders, but the natives might say, on their side, that they only stood up for their in- dependence. c 220 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. them handsome species of papilionacem with violet laburnum-like blossoms*) offering a welcome and unaccustomed shade, where, seated amidst a trellis- work of creepers on a dry carpet of fallen leaves and fading blossoms, you could dreamingly inhale the strong fragrant perfume which the ardent sun drew from the clustering jasmine that thrust itself into these pleasant arbours. There are apparently two species of jasmine growing here; one has a somewhat pinky flower with shiny leaves and thorny stem, is very common throughout Angola,f and grows independently in large bushes, and the other has a much larger pure-white and stephanotis-like blossom, is without thorns, and seemingly a creeper in its habits,J clambering high up over the trees and raining down its lovely star-like flowers in long trailing sprays. In the background behind all this greenery the land abruptly rises, and seems to be a row of ancient cliffs from which the sea has retreated and whence the rain has washed down the loose surface soil that forms this verdant garden of the undercliff. Their summits are bare and worn from the constant denu- dation, but about half a mile inland a rich vegetation once more takes possession of the soil. * Lonchocarpus sp. inc. In some glades of the woods the ground beneath these trees was covered with a pinky-mauve sheet of their fallen flowers. f I have never seen this jasmine (Corissa sp.) farther north on the Congo. £ Probably Jasminum auriculatum.FROM SAO PAULO BE LOANDA TO THE CONGO. 21 The natives, in the neighbourhood of Cabe?a da Cobra are Mashirongos * a degraded tribe, with dull black skins and poor physical development, that extends to the Lower Congo as far as Boma, but principally inhabits the marshy country along its southern bank near the sea. Sometime before we reach the Congo the red cliffs, which are such a constant feature in the South- West African coast, sink lower and lower, and give place at length to mighty mangrove swamps of considerable extent. Then the sea becomes coloured by the sediment of the river, and the contrast is sharply marked where the cloudy river water meets the clear sea. The colour of the Congo water is dark-brownish red, and that of the sea transparent green; the temperature of the two waters is also different—-that of the Congo registering 88° Fahrenheit, and the sea water 74°, a difference of nine degrees. The mouth of the Congo is comparatively simple and undivided when compared with the great deltas of the Nile, the Niger, and the Zambesi. In fact, this is one of the first impressions which gives an air of “ newness ” to the river, and suggests that its present outlet into the Atlantic Ocean may not be of very ancient date. That the Congo in many directions is trying to force its way to the sea by means of smaller branches I am inclined to believe, as many of its so-called “ creeks ” between Boma * Possibly a corruption of Mushihongo.22 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. and the sea, though at present remaining blind alleys, yet have gained in length in the memory of the European settlers on the Lower Congo, and it is the opinion of some who know the country that the river may ultimately force a way to the sea at Kabinda by means of a branch outlet from Boma (the present “ Crocodile ” river behind the settlement). The aspect of the mouth of the Congo with its two opposite points of Padrao and Banana is rather curious. They seem like the last fragments of the ancient coast-line through which the river has broken. Point Padrao is a spit of marshy land covered with splendid forest and fringed with break- waters of mangrove and clumps of beautiful Fan palms.* Banana Point is a little peninsula of sand, which on one side is lashed by the breakers of the Atlantic, and on the other meets the brunt of the mighty Congo. Its existence is only saved or prolonged by rows of stakes driven into the shore, while the beach is raised and fortified by masses of large stones. Why such an unmeaning name was given to this sandy promontory by the Dutch, who first christened it, I do not know; certainly it is no longer applicable, for not a banana is to be seen growing there. However, the name sticks to it, and is known far and wide now, for Banana is an important settlement, and is likely to become more so in the future development of the Congo, on account of being the only good and safe harbour at * Hyphsene Guineensis,CROWS ON THE BEACII AT BANANAI ROM SAO PAULO HE LOANDA TO THE OONGO. 25 its mouth. On this narrow strip of land, where space is as valuable as in some civilized cities, there are three separate factories of which that belonging to the Dutch Company is by far the largest and most importanti On the ground occupied by this establishment many handsome palms are planted, to aid with their roots in keeping the loose soil together. Where the peninsula is joined to the mainland it is all overgrown with giant mangroves and is very marshy in character, being to all intents and purposes an island, for it is impossible to reach the high ground beyond, otherwise than by water. On the inner side of the little promontory is a deep and capacious inlet, of the Congo, where there is room for a whole navy to be moored. Here ships of the greatest size can be anchored within fifty yards of the shore. The Dutch trading company of the Nieuwe Afrikaansche Handels G-enootschap, occupies nearly half Banana Point, and its site is healthy, for the narrowing strip of land is swept by the sea breezes, and all the washed-up refuse of the shore, together with the garbage thrown out of the houses, is soon gobbled up by the scapulated crows. These useful birds are wisely protected at Banana, and are, in consequence very tame, assembling in numbers on the sandy shore to demolish and consume all putre- fying matter that the land-crabs are too slow to eat. The Dutch establishment is very large, and the white employe's are perhaps nearly forty in number. Kruboys, Krumanos, and Kabindas are used for all26 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. the ruder labour in the factories and steamers be- longing to this company, and there are probably from three to four hundred of these “ niggers ” in the employ of the Dutch at Banana Point. There is a subtle distinction between Kruboy and Kruman, or, to use its Portuguese form, Krumano. The Kruboy comes from Sierra Leone* and the Liberian coast, and is much sought for throughout West Africa as an invaluable la- bourer well worthy of his hire. He is very independent and in- variably returns home at the expiration of his term of ser- vice, and lives a rollicking life amongst his relatives before he re-engages. The “ Kruman ” is an artificial name given to the indigenous slaves of the country—men, for instance, of tribes, that are sold by their merchants, who, in order to avoid shocking British susceptibilities, call them by the Portuguese rendering of Kruman (or Kru- boy)—viz. Krumano. Then “ Krumano,s ” are also obtained by other means than payment. If a native in these countries steals from a white man, he is compelled to become his slave, unless his people are prepared to pay a large indemnity. Naturally, in * Those at Sierra Leone are rather a separate colony from the Kru country, which lies to the east of Liberia. A il KELT-BOY.** the Lower Congo chiefs to EuropeanFROM 8A0 PAULO HE LOANDA TO THE CONGO. 27 nine cases out of ten, they do not care to do so, so the unhappy “ nigger ” who has been caught stealing a handful of tobacco or a piece of cloth (perhaps spread out as a bait) becomes the slave of the white man he has robbed. Such is the custom of the country, and one that seems to meet everybody’s views just at present. The native chief rules over a great number of subjects, and can easily part with one or two if “ squared,” and the white man stands greatly in need of black servants—not independent freemen like Kruboys or Kabindas, that will leave him to return to their own country just as they are getting to know his ways ; but a submissive slave that has no choice but to follow his master everywhere and remain with him always, knowing well what he may expect if he runs away—and is caught. Slavery certainly exists on the Lower Congo, as much as it ever did; the only difference is that it is internal, so to speak, and that owing to the vigilance of British cruisers and the absence of a lucrative market now-a- days, slaves are no longer exported from the Congo as in former days. And slavery will continue to exist, no matter under what name, as long as European merchants stand sorely in need of labour, and native chiefs are willing to “ apprentice ” or sell their superfluous subjects for an important considera- tion in gin, cloth, or guns. Any traveller who visits the factories on the Lower Congo—except perhaps in those belonging to the English—may see groups of slaves in chains who are so punished for having run away, and if he arrives at a time when a slave has28 A. JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. just been recaptured—possibly by his own relatives, who have brought him cheerfully back, sure of a reward—he will have an opportunity of studying the application of the formidable cow-hide whips to the runaway’s skin, and see the blood spirt from his well-flogged back. As a rule, I am bound to say the Krumanos are kindly treated. They are well fed, and have their wives and children often with them in their huts. If they were allowed to regain their liberty at the end of seven years of service, without being forced to renew their contract, there would not be so much harm in this system. The Portuguese method of government apprenticeship is one tolerably free from abuses, and would work well on the Congo. MANGROVE ROOTS AT BANANA.CHAPTER II. THE LOWER CONGO—BANANA POINT TO VIVI. Kissange—The Forest—Lissochilus giganteus—The Lagoons and thkir Inhabitants—A Vegetable Venice—Birds—A Native V ill age—Pets—Antelopes—A Crocodile Adventure—Ponta da Lenha—The Biver forming its Delta—Boma—Under- hill—Mussuka—Hell’s Cauldron—A Visit to Stanley— Belgique Creek—Vivi—Stanley and the Natives—The Dinner Party—One of Stanley’s Stations—Life at Vivi.CHAPTER II. THE LOWER CONUO— BANANA POINT TO YIYI Early in Decem- ber 1882,1 started to ascend the Congo on a Dutch steam- er, the Mo-. riaan, and made my first halt at Kissange, which is a small trading set- tlement some twenty-one miles from the sea on the south bank of the Congo, and admira- bly situated ^S|||!3 Lissochilus gigctnteus.32 A JOURNEY UR TEE RIVER CONGO. for a naturalist who wishes to study the rich swampy region of the Lower Congo with comparative ease and comfort. Here I spent three most pleasant weeks, enjoying the kind hospitality of Senhor Ribeiro at the Dutch Factory. Indeed I have since regretted the shortness of my stay, as there was such abundant material for study, and at the same time so many facilities for working in the midst of one’s field of research without undergoing privations or unnecessary fatigue. Away from the temporary and feeble clearings that the few commercial houses have made is grand majestic forest towering up into the sky, and displaying the most splendid effects which a rich and fan- tastic foliage, a brilliant colouring of varied greens, and a weird architecture of contorted and massive trunks can produce. Our adjectives are too puny to describe fitly the vegetation of such places as Kissange, We want to express ourselves in the tongues of Central Africa; which have sometimes seven different terms to express different kinds of forest. Beyond the actual inclosures of the factories here, there is a splendour of vegetable growth that defies an adequate rendering either with the brush or the pen. The hot sun and the oozy mud call into existence a plant life which must parallel in rank luxuriance and monstrous growth the forests of the coal measures, and reproduce for our eyes in these degenerate days somewhat of the majesty of the vegetable kingdom in bygone epochs. I) K1SSANGE FROM THE RIVERTEE LOWER CONGO—BANANA POINT TO VIVI. 35 In the marshy spots, down near the river shore, are masses of that splendid orchid, Lissochilus giganteus, a terrestrial species that shoots up often to the height of six feet from the ground, bearing such a head of red-mauve, golden-centred blossoms as scarcely any flower in the world can equal for beauty and delicacy of form. These orchids, with their light-green, spear-like leaves, and their tall swaying flower-stalks, grow in groups of forty and fifty together, often reflected in the shallow pools of stagnant water round their bases, and filling up the foreground of the high purple-green forest with a blaze of tender peach-like colour, upon which, I should have thought, no European could gaze unmoved. Yet the Portuguese merchants who lived among this loveliness scarcely regarded it, and laughed at the eagerness with which I gathered and painted this a capim ”—this mere grass or reed, as they call it. Clumps of a dwarf palm, Phoenix spinosa, which bears a just-eatable starveling date, hedge in these beautiful orchids from the wash of the river, and seem a sort of water-mark that the tides rarely pass ; but the water often leaks through the mud and vegetable barrier, and forms inside the ring of dwarf palms many little quiet lagoons, not necessarily unhealthy, for the water is changed and stirred by each recurring tide; and in these lagoons bordered by orchids and tall bushes, with large spatulate leaves, and white shining bracts about d 236 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. their flower stalks,* by pandanus, by waving oil- palms, and by mangrove trees poised on tbeir many feet, and telling out against the shining sky with tbeir lace-like tracery of leaves—in these quiet stretches of still water are the homes and feeding- grounds of myriad forms of life: of blue land-crabs, whose burrows riddle the black soil; of always alert and agitated “ mud-fish,” flapping and flopping through the ooze; of tiny amethystine red-beaked kingfishers ; of kingfishers that are black and white, or large and grey and speckled; of white egrets, of the brown and stork-like Scopus umbretta; of spur- winged geese; and of all-devouring Gypohierax vultures. A rustling in the vegetation, and a large varanus lizard slips into the water; or on some trampled bank a crocodile lies asleep in the warm sun, with a fixed smirk hanging about his grim muzzle. These lagoons are places seething with life —life that is ever stirring, striving, and active—and when you suddenly arrive, slipping and splashing in the watery footholds, the sudden silence that greets you is rather the frightened expectant hush of a thousand apprehensive creatures. Beyond the lagoons and this strip of mud and water, rises an almost impenetrable barrier of forest, nearly im- possible to pass by land, but which is fortunately pierced by many little arms or natural canals of the Congo that intersect it and penetrate to the firm dry land beyond. As you paddle gently in * Muss sendee.THE LOWER CONGO—BANANA POINT TO VIVI. 37 a native canoe through the watery alleys of this vegetable Venice, the majestic trees firmly interlaced above and overarching the canal, shrouding all in pale green gloom, the glimpses and vistas through the forest that you get reveal many beautiful forms of bird and insect life. Barbets * with red foreheads and large notched bills are sitting in stupid meditation on the twigs, giving a harsh and mechanical squeak if the too near ap- proach of the canoe disturbs their reverie. Little African wood- peckers are creeping up the branches, deftly turning round towards the unseen side when they observe you ; Pogonorhyncus oeogaster. large green mantises or “ praying insects 59 are chas- ing small flies with their great pouncing forelegs, and every now and then a blue roller-bird snaps up a mantis in spite of its wonderful assimilation to its leafy suiroundings. Farther into the forest, the canal, a blind alley of water, stops, the soil becomes solid and well raised, and a native path is discernible, leading through the now more park-like and formal clumps of forest to a distant village, whence the crowing of * Pogonorhyncus ceogaster.38 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CJONQO. cocks and the occasional shouts of the inhabitants can he heard. But the birds do not lessen because we are approaching the abode of men. Out of the bosky trees little troops of black and white hornbills suddenly start and flap their loose irre- gular flight to another refuge. Violet plantain- eaters gleam out in their beauty from time to time : golden cuckoos, yellow-vented bulbuls,* green fruit pigeons, grey parrots, parrots that are grey and blue and yellow-shouldered, green love-birds, and a multitude of little waxbills, a medley of diverse and beautiful birds enliven this walk through the forest along the black peat path with their loud cries, their lovely plumage, and their rapid movements. In the native village, which I thus reach, buried in the forest that overawes a stranger with its majesty, there are many indications of the neigh- bouring fauna. These riverine natives along the Lower Congo find it a profitable employment to capture and tame every possible kind of mammal, bird, and reptile, which they then bring down to the English steamers or the merchants at Banana to sell. Here, in this village near Kissange are young mandrils with their little leaden-blue faces gazing at you wistfully from the doorway of some native hut. In neatly-made wicker-work cages constructed from the light pithy wood of the baobab, many birds are awaiting the departure of their captors for Banana. Here is a green parrot,f green with a few * Pyononotus. f Pceocephalus robustus.THE LOWER CONGO—BANANA POINT TO VIVI. 39 red splashes on the wings, something like—perhaps somewhat allied to—the Amazon parrot of South America. Numberless little “ cordons-bleus,” wax- bills, and weaver-birds, are twittering in their really pretty cages. A poor little Galago lemur sits, huddled and stupid, in his wicker prison, stunned by the bright daylight to which he is exposed. The sight of all these living things is too much for me; and although I know how impossible it is to keep live creatures when you are travelling, I yield to the clamorous natives, and buy a cage of rare barhets (one of which is illustrated on p. 37), five in a charming little cage for a shilling, or at least for a shilling’s worth of cloth at the neighbouring factory. Kissange is very nearly an island,* being encircled by two arms of the Congo which only dry up occasionally in the dry season; on the mainland, where the land is really firm, more game is present than on the islands and marshy banks of the river. Harnessed antelopes,f bush-bucks,J Cobus and Ceplialophus antelopes are found in certain quantities. Crocodiles are not so numerous here as towards Boma, where they become a positive pest. As an illus- tration of their boldness and rapacity, I will cite the following incident which has recently been reported to me from this part of the Congo. A Portuguese merchant was descending the river in his large native * Kissange in Kongo means “ island.’’ Tragelaplms scriptus. J T. grains.40 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. canoe. He was seated on a chair in the bow, and, as the canoe glided along, he noticed a large crocodile keeping up with it, and swimming under water. He paid but little attention to the creature’s movements, merely noting its constant pursuit to the canoe-men, who laughed at its persistence. Suddenly, however, the crocodile sprang from the water and seizing the white man by the leg, nearly dragged him into the river. The Kabindas, who were paddling, in- tervened with great decision and presence of mind, and heat the crocodile about the head with their paddles so severely that he moderated his demands, and went off with a foot instead of the white man’s whole body. The victim was taken to an English merchant of Ponta da Lenha, who is skilled in surgery, and who, I believe, saved the life of the crocodile’s victim by skilful treatment. This should teach travellers on the Congo not to welcome the com- panionship of crocodiles, but fire at them in and out of season. Hippopotami are not so fre- quently seen on this lower part of the river, but become more numerous as we approach Boma. The carnivora here are represented by civets, lovely little genet cats and leopards, whose claws are used to decorate the caps of the chiefs on the Lower Congo. The next settlement of importance is Ponta da Lenha, where steamers call for supplies of wood-fuel (whence the name in Portuguese—“ The Wood point ”). Ponta da Lenha, forty-miles from the sea,THE LOWER CONGO —BANANA POINT TO VIVI. 41 and just out of the district of the mangrove swamps, offers little of interest or note save its fine orange trees, the only ones to be found on the lower river. This place is barely above the level of the stream, and the shore has to be protected with piles, as the Congo is eating Ponta da Lenha away. Only a little while ago, a French factory disappeared completely into the water, which now flows twenty feet above it. In the ordinary course of events this place would long ago have disappeared without the intervention* of man ; for the Lower Congo seems to be widening its bed year by year, and even striking out new issues towards the sea—at present all of them blind alleys; but the Congo is so ambitious of having a delta, that I am sure he will ultimately attain what his older fellows in Africa, the Nile, the Niger, and the Zambesi already possess. Boma, once, and that not long since, the limit of European extension on the Congo, lies about eighty miles from the mouth of the river, and is the site of many “ factories ” and trading establishments be- longing to the English, Dutch, French, Portuguese, and Belgians. There is also a flourishing Catholic Mission here. The river at and below Boma somewhat resembles the Congo at Stanley Pool in its great breadth, its many islands, and the numberless water- birds that haunt its banks. The sinister influence of the barren stony hills and straitened stream that marks the Cataract region is over, and Nature expands in richness and luxuriance. No villages are42 A JOURNEY UP PEE RIVER CONGO. found near the river until Yivi is reached. There is, it is true, a sort of native town near Kissange, but it is chiefly used for trading purposes, and is almost abandoned in the rainy season. Boma is, perhaps, the most unhealthy place on the Congo. The heat is excessive, and behind the European houses lie great swamps and fetid marshes, wrhich not only give rise to much fever, but breed the most terrible mosquitoes for size and bloodthirstiness ‘that I have ever known. Fortunately, both my visits there, coming and going, were of short duration, and I hastened to leave a place which, whether from fancy or otherwise, seemed to me eminently disagreeable. Ascending the river towards Underhill, a settle- ment of the Baptist Mission on the south bank of the Congo about 110 miles from the sea, where I had been invited to pass a few days on my way to the interior, I noted the increasing asperity of the river scenery. The rounded grassy downs of Boma became abrupt and jagged hills with great red patches of bare earth, and little forest remaining in tbeir stony clefts. The graceful Hyphsene palms with their fan-like fronds gradually decreased in numbers until they finally and completely disap- peared. Meantime the river narrowed, and wound tortuously with many whirlpools and sunken rocks amid the stern precipitous hills, hills that were fast becoming mountains. I touched at Mussuka, a point of departure for Sao Salvador, and Noki, aTEE LOWER OONGO—BANANA POINT TO VIVI. 43 trading station on both sides of the river, and finally arrived at “ Underhill, ” the site of a large Baptist Mission, a place known by the natives as Tundua. “ Underhill ” stands a few miles from Vivi on the opposite bank, and is situated amid really picturesque scenery. The great river takes a broad bend opposite the station, and is shut in on both sides by the towering hills, so that it resembles nothing so much as a beautiful mountain lake lying in a profound gorge, save that the whirling, racing current shows you on reflection, that there must be a great river harassed and exasperated by the many obstacles that incessantly beset its hurried course towards the sea. Caught in this great bend, the river tearing down from Vivi has to pass through a somewhat narrow passage, and then hurls the whole of its stream against an immense and imposing cliff that really seems a great mountain side shorn in half. It rises almost perpendicularly from the water, which so boils, and. whirls, and seethes, and eddies at its base, that this loop of the river has been called by the Portuguese “ Hell’s Caldron.” The intense red colour of the earth, where the cliff has been scarped and bared by the rains, and its lurid reflections in the streaks of smooth water ; the dark purple-green woods that nestle in the sombre hollows of the hills—hills that seem pitilessly to enclose the scene and forbid escape—the unquiet water and the ghoul-like vultures, always soaring in black and white relief against the dark-toned background;4 4 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. all these details render the grim name singularly applicable, though the scene to which it has been applied has a savage beauty about it that redeems the gloom. The little mission-house was building when I first went there, the principal element in its construction being, as in most of the temporary houses on the Lower Congo, what the Portuguese call “ bordao ” and the English “ bamboo,” but which really is the strong shafts of the full-grown fronds of Phcenix spinosa, a species of dwarf palm, growing abun- dantly on the river between Boma and the sea, in the marshy districts and flat mud-banks that border the widening river. The skeleton of the house is first formed by a scaffolding of stout poles cut from among the saplings of the neighbouring forest, and in between these the “ bamboo” rods are worked, and make an excellent and firm partition through the chinks of which the air can freely penetrate. Underhill is a pretty station, but so shut in by natural obstacles that it is difficult to explore much of the neighbourhood in the absence of any path over the stony hills, where the strong grass, growing often six feet high, does not conduce to a pleasant walk. I was preparing to make a little journey along the south bank of the river, hoping ultimately to reach Stanley Pool, when on the eve of my departure the Belgique, a steamer belonging to the African International Association, called at Underhill, andTHE LOWER CONGO—BANANA POINT TO VIVI. 45 the captain gave me a message from the chief of Yivi station, inviting me to come over to see Mr. Stanley, who had just returned from Europe. I deferred my intended departure for a day, and ac- companied the captain of the Belgique on his way up stream to Yivi. Several times before, I had seen this vessel pass the mission and then disappear, as it were, into the very mountain side, for the entrance to “ Hell’s Caldron” was strangely hidden, so that to the great wish I entertained of meeting Stanley in Africa, and discoursing with him there on African things, was added a vague curiosity to' see what was “ round the corner ” of this great gorge in the mountains. What I did see, on turning a bend in the straitened and harassed stream, here flowing between precipitous hills of a thousand feet, was Yivi, which, as it rose bright and glistening under the afternoon sun, its white houses crowning a great gaunt cliff, and gleaming out in their brightness like some Eastern city on a fortress-hill, did, indeed, hardly look a peaceful settlement, but rather the stronghold of some river pirate and the storehouse of his booty. The little steamer, fearful in those days of struggling to the foot of Yivi Hill, where the last strong rush of water was difficult to stem, put into a little creek—Belgique Creek as it is still called—and here we landed, and walked through moist woods and dank ravines to Yivi, the last part of the way being an arduous ascent along a red clayey road. As we neared the station, increasing numbers of46 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. people were seen, till, arriving in the centre of the great oblong space round which the houses stand, it was like assisting at some huge African fair. Two hundred and eighty Zanzibaris had arrived the day before, in addition to those that were already at the station, and then there were “ Kruboys,” “ Kabin- das,” and many of the natives from the vicinity ; for in addition to the already numerous arrivals, several important chiefs with their crowds of followers had come to hold a palaver of honour, a sort of afternoon call, on “ Bula Matade,”* to welcome him back to his work on the Congo. Here he was, seated on his camp-chair, his pipe in his mouth, and a semicircle of grinning kinglets squatting in front of him, some of them smoking long-stemmed, little bowled pipes in complacent silence, and others putting many questions to “ Bula Matade ” as to his recent journey to Europe—to “ Mputo,” the land beyond the sea, as fhey call it—and receiving his replies with expressions of incredulous wonder, tapping their open mouths with their hands. I paused involuntarily to look at this group, for Stanley had not yet seen me approaching, and was unconscious of observation. Perhaps he never posed better for his picture than at that moment, as he sat benignly chatting and smoking with the native chiefs, his face lighting up with amusement at their naive remarks, while the bearing of his head still retained that somewhat proud carriage that inspired these African chief- * Stanley’s Congo name, “ The Book Breaker.”TIIE LOWER CONGO—BANANA POINT TO VIVI, 47 tains with a real respect for his wishes, and a desire to retain his friendship. Any one observing Stanley at this moment conld comprehend the great influence he possesses over the native mind on the Congo, and could realise how that influence must tend toward peace wherever Stanley’s fame has reached, for to attach a friend of Stanley’s seems to the natives scarcely less futile than attacking Stanley himself. Stanley turned suddenly as the chief of the station introduced me, and welcomed me in a thoroughly cordial manner; then dismissing the native chiefs, who had examined me curiously under the belief that I was “ Bula Matade’s ” son, he sent Dualla for some tea. Dualla was a handsome Somali lad, son of the chief of the police at Aden, and versed in many European and African languages. He had been Stanley’s body-servant on the Congo since 1879. On the first night of my arrival we were a larger party—some twenty-seven white men in all—than the ordinary dining-room would comfortably contain, so, as the night was brilliantly fine and still, the long dinner-table was spread in the open moonlight near the edge of the jagged cliff, and here we sat long after the meal was over, calmly enjoying the balmy night, and listening to Stanley’s always vivid descrip- tions of past African experiences, enhanced in this case by such a splendid raise en scene to his discourse as Yivi, the dark mountains, the rushing river, and the quiet moonlight could lend. Yivi station is48 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. about 360 feet above tbe sea, and a clear 270 feet above the Congo. The projecting mass of hill upon which the station is placed rises higher as it nears the river, and is almost inapproachable save from the inland side, or by means of a road winding up from the river bank. . On the left of this precipitous hill a little slream, dashing in tiny cascades through a series of small chasms in the blue-grey rock, gives rise to some vegetation, and, indeed, rather pictur- esque hanging woods, and fertilises the large gardens and banana plantations that have been made in the valley. This stream is very nearly perennial, but in the dry season it occasionally fails, otherwise it may be looked upon as the water supply of Yivi, for its water is more agreeable to drink than that of the Congo, which, though perfectly wholesome, is charged with sandy sediment and has often a taste of weak tea. On the opposite side of Yivi Hill opens another valley, full of richly-hued green woods, rising and falling till they reach the distant rolling downs that rise above “ Hell’s Caldron.” Behind Yivi a huge mass of rock towers up into the sky, scantily covered with tufts of vegetation, and surmounted by great blocks of stone that look like the remains of a cairn or some Druidical temple. To describe one of Mr. Stanley’s stations is no very satisfactory task, for, by the time your descrip- tion is printed and published, the place may be utterly transformed, and indeed, so quickly do things march now on the Congo that Yivi, the most stableE VIVI FROM THE ISANGILA ROAD.tee LOWER CONGO—BANANA POINT TO VIVI. 51 of all the establishments, is probably no longer as I knew it. However, in the beginning of 1883, the arrangement of the buildings was pretty much as follows. On the summit, and near the riverward edge of the cliff, was a flat and level platform, nearly artificial, and about eighty feet square. Here were placed several important bouses. The principal one contained an upper story, with Mr. Stanley’s bed- room, and on the ground-floor a large sitting-room, surrounded by amply filled book-shelves, the doctor’s room and laboratory, the bed-room of the second in command, a “ store,” an office or bureau, and a gun- room. This bouse was going to be removed and rebuilt—or rather, an entirely new building was to be put in its place, as it was hot and badly adapted for the climate; the double walls did not seem to render it much cooler, and moreover, bad become the home of a colony of abominable little bats, whose squeaking, both at dawn and sunset, was most fidgeting; perhaps, however, on account of the bats, mosquitoes were almost absent at Vivi, a great and appreciable relief to those who suffer from their venomous bites. The opposite building to “ Stanley’s House ” was a large sort of one-storied barrack, containing a number of bed-rooms for the white residents, and a large dining-room open on three sides to the air. There were also on this upper plateau, which might be called the fashionable part of Vivi, an observatory, a shower-bath, a pigeon-house, and the usual domestic offices. From the verandah that runs along the E 252 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. shady side of Stanley’s house a most beautiful view of the Lower Congo, with its woody islands, its swirling rapids, and noble downs may he obtained. Here, also, are placed many comfortable seats and chairs, and in the warm afternoon hours it is pleasant to rest here, half dreamily, with a nice book from the well-furnished library, and let one’s eyes wander from its pages to the sun-steeped landscape below the hill. From this raised square two broad flights of steps lead down to an oblong space of ground with a long garden in the centre, round which are placed houses for white men, kitchens, stores, piggeries, fowl- houses, and finally, apart from all the rest, a powder magazine. Beyond these, and generally below, for the “ white ” part of Yivi occupies the summit of the hill, all the settlements and little tidy cabins of the Zanzibaris, the Krurnen, and the Kabindas are placed, each race forming, as it were, a little colony by itself. This “ native town ” is scrupulously clean, and some of the little compounds belonging to the headmen, or to those whose married condition entitles them to a more excluded way of living, are really very pretty and bright, with their tiny plantations, and flocks of chickens and Muscovy ducks. In any direction, if you want to leave Yivi, you must go down. The prettiest walk lies towards the little brook. Thence, at sunrise and towards sunset, the women wend their way with their pitchers balanced on the head, to bring water for their households. Lower down the stream, near where the road toTHE LOWER CONGO—BANANA POINT TO VIVI. 55 Isangila crosses it, is the washing-place where, under the shelter of a few well-placed umbrageous trees, the women spend the noontime over the linen. It is here that all the gossip is exchanged among the coloured ladies; and it is here that, if your “ boy ” obtains a few minutes’ leave, he comes to revel in the scandal of black society. Life at Vivi had a certain monotony, and one day passed much like another, save that on Sundays no work was done, and an air of decorous dulness pervaded everything. When I stayed at Vivi it was generally to obtain a temporary rest, and therefore I led principally an indoor life and devoted myself to arranging the facts I had already collected in divers expeditious. My time passed much as follows. In the early morning, about six, my Zanzibari servant would come into my room with a tray of light breakfast—coffee, bread and butter, sardines, &c. I dallied over this meal with one of the hundred and fifty hooks of the station library, and then sauntered out in pyjamas to the shower-bath just outside the house, and after refreshing myself with a good douche, I dressed and took a walk to botanise or sketch. At noon we all met at breakfast— or lunch— which was laid on the long table in the nearly open- air dining-room I have already mentioned. This meal generally began with soup, and then there would follow roast meat and boiled, the flesh of sheep, goat, pig, or an occasional antelope; chicken, cooked in different ways, curry, and all the most56 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. dazzling show that tinned-meats could offer—not very brilliant or toothsome these latter it must be owned—■ and I myself always preferred plain roast goat, however tough, to the insipid contents of a tin, notwithstanding the attractive title it might bear in the menu. Lisbon wine and Bordeaux were always on the table, and occasionally beer. Breakfast wound up with coffee and biscuits, and the meal finished, every one separate?! to pass away the hot hours of the day either in siesta or reading beneath the cool verandah. This was the silent hour, when scarcely even a Zanzibari was seen stirring, and where the European perspired tranquilly in pyjamas. About four, afternoon tea was about, or: afternoon coffee or chocolate, as you preferred it. It was generally made separately for you by your own “ boy,” and either drunk in one’s own room, or enjoyed amid a group of gossipers in the common sitting-room. Then work began again in earnest. The pickaxes of the road- makers, the hammering from the carpenter’s shop, the cries of the Kruboys unloading cargo from a steamer, the jabbering of the natives come to traffic their products against the white man’s cloth, beads, wire, and gin, all formed the busy turmoil that rose from the awaking station, and which continued till the sun was down, and the bell had sounded for cessation of work. Then the cooking fires of the Zanzibaris and the Kruboys twinkled in the dusky bush, and the dinner-table was laid for the white men,THE LOWER CONGO— BANANA POINT TO VIVI. 57 with the pleasant glow of lamplight reflected on the white cloth and the knives and forks, like a glimpse of far-off civilization. Every one expanded at dinner-time. The anxious chief forgot his anxieties; those who thought they were going to die of fever seemed at any rate resolved to die with a full stomach ; the doctor rubbed his hands and looked hopeful; people who had been “ distant ” with one another during the day became cordial; and after the meal was over, and the cigars and wine were placed on the table, we would grow so interested in discussions as to the relative merits of the governments, the journals, and the theatres of our respective lands, that in our conversation we were completely transported b;,ok to Europe. So: much so, that when we bade each other good-night, it gave quite a revulsion to our thoughts to leave the brightly-lighted dining- room, the laughing faces and the eager talk, and walk off to one’s bedroom through the warm and scented African night, where the Southern Cross rose above that great rushing' river, and where the deep silence was only broken at times by the cry of a night-bird or the yelp of a distant dog.OUCHLDSCHAPTER III. PALLABALLA AND YELLALA. N ATI VE Y ILL AGES—AGRICULTURE—DOMESTIC ANIMALS—HOUSES— Scenery—The Livingstone Inland Mission—Fiote the Lan- guage of the Congo—The neighbouring Kings—Native Superstitions—Native Feelings towards Christianity—King Kongo-Mpaka—Cucurbits—The Lufu—Return to Yivi— Journey to Yellala—Nguvi Mpanda and its amiable Chief—The Scenery on the Road—The Grass—Grass- hoppers—Kai—Dracaenas—The Chief of Yellala—Ntete Mbongo’s Toilette—Journey to the Falls—The Falls of Yellala—A Fish Breakfast—Return to Yivi.CHAPTER III. PALLABALLA AND YELLALA. Leaving Yivi for a time, I returned to Underhill, to undertake the journey along the south bank of the river for which I had made previous preparations, with the intention, however, of returning to Mr. Stanley’s station should I not succeed in my enter- prise. I intended, at any rate, to visit the interest-62 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. ing native down of Pallaballa, which lay about six miles from the Congo, due south from Yivi. Having mustered my few carriers, most of them the riff-raff of Boma, I left Underhill in the sultry noontime and toiled at first up a steep and stony hill, most exas- perating in character, where my feet slipped back at every step off the sharp-edged stones. Then as the little groups of Mission buildings vanished behind, shut out by the brow of the hill, a fresh stretch of the river Congo, rolling swiftly along through narrow- ing banks, came into view, with Vivi rising high above its north bank, a crest of white houses sur- mounting a scarped red cliff. The road winding down from this eagle’s nest to the riverside was very distinctly seen. The stream of the Congo here,accord- ing to Mr. Stanley’s soundings, is of immense depth, ninety fathoms, and in the rainy season flows at the rate of nine miles an hour, but to any one not knowing this, it is hard to believe that this river, 500 yards broad at most, is the same stream as the great Lualaba. As one descends the valley, the river finally disap- pears from view. It is flowing from the north, and Pallaballa lies nearly due east. The path thither leads you through two or three native villages of a com- fortable and prosperous appearance, and suggesting here and there by certain cunning shifts and con- trivances that their inhabitants are not bereft of savoir vivre. There are well-cultured plots of maize and manioc, here and there a lime, and even an orange tree (these latter rare), papaw trees, and thePALLABALLA AND YELlAlA. 63 beautiful passion-flower, which gives the fruit known as maracuja or grenadilla, is carefully trained over a framework of sticks. Little beds of earth are being assiduously hoed, and are marked out with geome- trical accuracy by means of the same device as our HEN-HOUSE. gardeners employ at home, a tight string tied from peg to peg, only that in this case a sort of bast or fibre is used instead of string. There are clucking fowls with small chicks about them, carefully housed in large hencoops made of withes and grass to64 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. protect the chickens from their many enemies ; and for the hens to lay in, and the fowls to roost in at night, neat little hen-houses are raised on posts, out of the reach of snakes. In a rough sort of shanty, constructed principally of overlaid palm-fronds, are the goats and the sheep (the sheep are of the usual Central African stock, with short hairy coats, supplemented in the ram by a splendid silky mane from his chin to his stomach) ; CONGO HOUSE. and even, rarely, we may see a black high-shouldered bullock stalled in a not ill-fashioned manger made of the same material. The houses are well and neatly built, generally raised a foot above the ground on a platform of beaten earth. There is first of all a framework of stout poles, one very long pole forming the apex of the slanting and wide-spreading roof, and on this is fixed a covering of thin laths and dried grass. The roof extends some feet beyond the body of the house,PALLABALLA AND TELLALA. 85 and in front is prolonged to a sort of verandah, further supported by two extra poles, and susceptible of any modification, from being the shady space of a few feet where the inmates of the house pass most of their time, to becoming the great reception-place and palaver-ground of kings. Here, as we pass, the in- habitants of each house are nearly always assembled. The women look up from pounding palm-kernels and show all their teeth in a grin at the “mundele” (white man); the men, squatted in lazy ease, take their large-bowled pipes from their mouths and call out a salutation, generally “ Mavimpi,”, whilst, irresolute between .the threshold and the interior, large-headed, round-eyed children mutely and dis- trustfully regard the white man, who must in their eyes as much embody some notion of uncanny bogy- ism as the traditional black man does to English children. Around each village there is a grove of bananas, or plantains, a perpetual source of food supply to their cultivators. Two sorts of fruit are principally eaten here; the plantain, which has no sweet taste, but is excellent roasted and. eaten with butter, and the richly sweet banana. , . . The style of scenery on the road to Pallaballa is typical of the cataract region of the Congo, a succes- sion of stony hills, covered with rough grass, and rich, fertile valleys with luxuriant forests and run- ning streams in their depths. About midway to Pallaballa, you have to cross by means of a native F66 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. ferry the river Mposo,* a rapid stream that rises near Sao Salvador, and flows into the Congo exactly opposite Vivi. Beyond this the road is all np hill and down dale, till at length we descry a fringe of forest which marks the site of Pallaballa, on the crest of a great hill, 1600 feet high. As I pass through the native village, the people cry out “ Mundele, MOUTH OF MPOSO RIVER. mundele,” and several come forward and salute me witlr “ ’Morning,” a contraction of “ Glood-morning,” which they have learnt from the missionaries. The missionary of the Livingstone Inland Mission, who was resident at Pallaballa, gave me a kind reception, and a welcome meal was soon prepared for me by his * Mposo means buffalo. Many African rivers are named after animals.PALLABALLA AND YELLALA. 67 orders. There were delicious fried bananas, pounded pea-nut sauce with roast chicken, “ palm-oil chop,” and many other native dishes, supplemented with a few European accessories. After dinner I attended prayers with the missionary in the school-house, where an English lady, one of the members of the mission, was residing. Here some twenty people were assembled, principally boys. There was a little giggling at our approach, otherwise they were well- behaved. The missionary prayed in Fiote (the lan- guage of the Lower Congo) and in English, and also read a chapter of the Bible in the same tongues. The subject in Fiote was not wisely chosen, being a weari- some record of Jewish wars, where familiar-sounding Bible names were strangely mixed up with unintel- ligible Fiote. All the while the black congregation (swelled this evening by my five porters) sat stolidly unmoved, although the missionary strove to infuse as much interest as possible into his discourse. After this followed a Moody and Sankey hymn in Fiote, in which I felt anything but at home, and could only make semblance with my lips to be following. Finally, a short prayer finished up the whole, and then began a ceremony which the natives would not miss for the world. Each one came separately and shook hands with the lady, the missionary and myself, accompanying the shake-hands with a “ goo’-night, Sir,” applied indifferently to either sex. We also re- tired to our rooms, and although mine was rather damp (there was a fine crop of mushrooms—alas! f 268 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. not edible, and waving grass growing on my bed- room floor), I had a comfortable bed and slept well. It was very humid and wet at Pallaballa. Every morning and evening a thick mist surrounded everything and rendered the .place clammy and un- healthy. There are four kings or chieftains in this neighbourhood, Kongo-Mpaka, Nikiangila, Tantia, and a small boy, whose name I forget. Kongo- Mpaka is the head king, and only owes allegiance to the king of Congo at Sao Salvador. A little while ago one of the queens of this king of Congo made a sort of progress through his dominions, and was received with great respect at Pallaballa. The local dialect here is a very pure form of the Fiote (Fiote really means the “people,” the “mass”) or “ Congo ” tongue, which has been studied by Europeans ever since the days of Brusciotto (1659), Proyart (1776), and Canecattim (1806). The Portuguese has largely influenced this tongue, as may be seen by the vocabulary I append; and perhaps at Pallaballa there are even more terms of that language in common use than farther north; nor is this to be wondered at, when we consider that Portugal has for four centuries exercised a domina- ting influence, religious and political, over these lands. At Pallaballa the natives were, at the time of my visit, disposed,to be impudent and even aggressive towards white men, but during the last few months of my stay on the Congo, they modified their tone,PALLABALLA AND YELLAlA. 69 owing to their commercial relations with Mr. Stanley’s expedition, They are very superstitious, and for every person that dies somebody is made “ ndokki ” (or “ devil possessed”), and has to take the casca poison.* This is usually administered in such a way as to be merely a strong emetic, under the idea that the victim may “ bring up ” the devil, and cast him out with his bile. They think a great deal of their Nkimba,” and on the south bank of the river, where Mr. Stanley’s influence is not as yet so firmly established as in the neighbourhood of Yivi, it is dangerous for a white man to offend these fanatics, who will severely beat him (as they did a young member of the Livingstone Mission) with their long wands or staves in return for fancied slights. The Nkimba are in all probability males undergoing circumcision, and initiation into the rites of marriage* They may be of any age, boys of eleven or men of forty; but generally the “ Nkimbaship ” is under- gone by young men. A fuller description of their ceremonies and observances will be found in Chapter XYI. The people of Pallaballa may be said to “ patronise ” Christianity, a religion which, in my * This “ Casca ” poison is prepared from the thick, hard bark of a large tree, Erythrophlceum Guineense, from 40 to 100 feet in height, belonging to the tribe Dimorgphandrese, suborder Csesal- pinise, Nat-. Ord. Leguminosse. See Monteiro, ‘Angola and River Congo,’ vol.i. pp. 61-65 ; and Oliver, ‘Flora of Tropical Africa,’ voi. ii. pp. 320-321.70 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. opinion, they are in their present mental condition totally unfitted to understand. When the missionary holds a Sunday service in King Kongo-Mpaka’s house, some twenty or thirty' idlers look in, in a genial way, to see what is going on,- much as we might be present at any of their ceremonies. They behave very well, and imitate, with that exact mimicry which only the negro possesses, all our gestures and actions, so that a hasty observer would conclude they were really touched by the service. They kneel down with an abandon of devotion, clasp their hands, and say “ Amen ” with a deep ventral enthusiasm. The missionary, on the occa- sion that I accompanied him, gave a short sermon in Fiote, well expressed considering the little time he had been studying the language. The king con- stantly took up the end of some phrase, and repeated it with patronising interest after the missionary, just to show how he was attending, throwing mean- while a furtive glance at his wives, who were not pursuing their avocations outside with sufficient diligence. A short prayer concluded the service, and when the king rose from his knees, he promptly demanded the loan of a hand-screw to effect some alteration in his new canoe. Hound Pallahalla the vegetation is very rich. There is beautiful forest in the valleys wherein pine-apples grow wild, and the bracken fern gives a familiar air to the undergrowth in the woodland glades. The CucurMtaeem are very noticeable here,PALLABALLA AND TELL ALA. 71 particularly one species that has most gorgeous fruits; they are egg-shaped, about the size of a pear, and covered with prickles. The outside is the most brilliant orange colour; when ripe, the husk splits into four sections, displaying the interior where the black seeds are lying enveloped in pulp of the richest crimson hue I have ever seen in nature. The com- monest birds round Pallaballa are the grey parrot, the Gfypoliierax vulture, and a small black hornbill. In my journeys beyond this place I reached to the river Lufu, but the extortions of the local chief, the difficulty of procuring food, and the untrust- worthiness of my carriers, who were secretly in league with the natives, rendered any further pro- gress along this inhospitable route inadvisable, especially as Mr. Stanley’s road to the north of the river was open to me, where I should be perfectly free from the exactions of the native chiefs, and have merely the usual physical difficulties of ordinary African travelling to contend with. In fact, in the end of 1882, this road along the southern side of the Congo offered many obstructions which have since been removed. The negro can only be ruled by gentle force, and the long-suffering missionaries are the worst people possible to deal with him. A “ rule of love ’’ he takes for a confession of weakness, and abuses it accordingly. When I had once entered Palla- balla, where the Livingstone missionaries have been patiently working for three years, I could not leave it, either to go backwards or forwards, until I had72 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. paid the rascally old.king, Kongo-Mpaka, in the missionary’s presence, a present of gin to the value of 25s. The missionary felt humiliated at having to interpret the king’s demand, but it was a case of force majeure, and my kind host was powerless in the matter, having been so often exposed to forced contributions himself. However, this is all altered now. Mr. Stanley’s agents have recently made treaties with the chiefs at Pallaballa and in the neigh- bourhood, and as a result of their efforts the southern road now no longer offers the slightest difficulty to even a solitary traveller. I returned to Yivi on the first day of the New Year, 1883, and was in time to participate in a very enjoyable dinner which cele- brated the Jour de l’An. The succeeding week was occupied in making various excursions and in pre- paring for my great journey up the river, which was to take place with the help, and under the auspices of Mr. Stanley’s expedition. Amongst the various shorter trips, however, which I made at different times to places in the neighbourhood of Yivi, was a visit to the celebrated Palls of Yellala, the greatest and first-known rapids of the Congo, which I will here describe because of their natural sequence to the country already treated of, although I did not actually see them until my return from the upper river. The Falls of Yellala are only some nine miles from Yivi as the crow Hies, but by the'winding road it is a distance of thirteen or fourteen. I started amid thePALLABALLA AND YELLALA. 73 morning mists that marked the commencement of the dry season. The overarching grass, rank and high with the previous rainy-season’s growth, was most fatiguing and difficult to pass through, and before I halted at the pleasant little village of Nguvi Mpanda, I was cut and scratched and slashed to such an ex- asperating degree that I was quite out of temper, the CHIEF OF NGUVI MPANDA. more so as myriads of little barbed seeds had crept down the back of my neck, and were pricking me at every motion of my body. At Nguvi Mpanda a few minutes of welcome rest in the verandah of the chief’s house, and long copious clrinks of creamy, frothing “palm-wine ” just drawn from the tree,* restored me to equanimity, and I was enabled to reciprocate the profession of brotherhood on the part * In this case, Blais Guineensis, the oil-palin, but the sap of other palms, as will he seen farther on, is used as a beverage.74 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. of the amiable chief with like effusion. He had not yet wearied of a whistle 'I had given him on a previous visit, and u'sed it with unnecessary fre- quency to enforce his commands. I ought to remark, en passant, that the palm-wine was served in a silver-gilt jug, and drank out of a silver-gilt goblet. This will give you an idea of how civili- zation is acting upon Nguvi Mpanda. The path leading to Yellala branched off from the Isangila road a short distance beyond this village. For some half mile we wandered through plantations of sweet potatoes and ground-nuts, and then emerging from the thick vegetation, stood on the brow of a great hill, from which an astonishing sweep of view was commanded. We looked right across a wide expanse of rolling grassy down and winding valleys, at a colossal mass of rising-ground, surmounted by a fringe of dark trees, where lay the distant village of Yellala. To the right bold ranges of hills on the other hank of the invisible Congo, and to the left more hills from whence the little river Loa takes its rise. The humpy valley at my feet seemed a long basin of dish-like shape, shut in by these many mountains. I call it a “ humpy ” valley, because it was very unequal in surface. Little hummocks or hillocks broke up its uniformity, and it was dotted and strewn with blocks of white quartz, which seemed as if they had been recently washed out of the crumbling hillside by the heavy rains. A grand view for space and aerial effect it was, and one moreover singu-PALLABALLA AND YELLALA. 75 lariy characteristic of this part of the Congo ; but withal ugly, inhospitable, and tame. All alike, hills and valleys were clothed with waving yellow-green grass, the monotony only broken by the intrusive blocks of quartz. Save in one or two sheltered valleys, where a few pitiful oil-palms clustered, not a tree was to be seen; and the little gnarled bushes here and there to be found were almost covered with the tall, feathery grass that was emphatically the king of the country. The only signs of animal life were very large grasshoppers, with green bodies and scarlet wings, that whirred across the path, in a blaze of scarlet, and then settled down on some grass stalk and relapsed into a monotony of green. The country was not lacking in water, fortunately, and our immoderate thirst, after scrambling down the rocky hillside, was amply quenched in the cool limpid water that flowed through every valley and ravine. It was with great relief that we left this country of grass and rocks behind us, and entered the village of Ka'i, which was embosomed in rich vege- tation. Here we paused to drink more palm-wine, for the thirst engendered by the terrible scramble over loose stones and through the rasping grass was over- powering, and fortunate we were to be able to quench it with freshly drawn “ malafu ” (the sap of the palm tree), which, to my thinking, is nowhere so delicious as in the environs of Vivi. Glood palm-wine resembles strong sweet cider, and is quite as heady.76 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. Ka'i is little more than a suburb of Yell ala village, and the short distance between the two is filled up with plantations and banana groves. The rich and rank vegetation that surrounds the neatly-built houses is most amazing, Dracaena SapoohinowM. compared with the barrenness outside. I saw some remarkably fine clumps of euphor- bias * as I entered the village of Yellala, and further on, some hand- some Dracaenas,f or dragon trees, in full blossom, with graceful sprays of small cream- coloured flowers depen- ding from among the spikey leaves, the gen- eral aspect of the plant recalling the Yuccas, to which it is distantly allied. It is the first and only time that I remember to have seen this Dracaena on the Congo, and it seems curious to find it preserved thus in a village. Indeed, it is an interesting fact that so many plants should be found *1 Euphorbia hermentiana. f Dracsena Sapochinotvlci.PALLABALLA AND YELLAlA. 77 growing in the villages in this part of Africa, which are never to be seen in the open. The euphorbias, for instance, I have never seen in a wild state, so to speak, but they exist in all the villages on or near the Congo from Yellala to Boldbo. Their native name in Congo is “ Ndiza,” but although they are known and named, I never could ascertain that any superstitious value or importance was attached to them which would serve to explain their constant presence in native towns; perhaps the real solution of this fact, as also of the presence of large trees and luxuriant vegetation round the villages, is that all the unin- habited country is periodically set on fire by the natives, and that only in those places which the bush-fires do not reach can rich vegetation and forest trees exist. It is evident—and, indeed, the fact has struck Stanley, Schweinfurth, and most observant African travellers—that the grass fires must largely affect the “ phytography ” of Africa. The chief of Yellala I discovered by chance in the act of performing a very hasty toilet in my honour. He was wrapping a piece of velvet around his loins, in exchange for the dirty cloth that was his every- day dress. He added to this a long livery-coat, which must have been splendid in the days when it; retained, all its buttons, and then, issuing from his palisaded hut, he greeted me most politely. His name, he told me, was Ntete Mbongo, and he was chief of Yellala, of Ka'i, and of three other villages with very long names that I forget. A long, conical,78 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. shaped head, like an Aztec; a pair of very fine expressive eyes, surmounted by strongly-marked eyebrows, a well-shaped nose, and thin lips, made up an original and certainly distinguished physiognomy ; and though there were at times passing glimpses ol expression that suggested cruelty and greed, they were dispersed by an unusually pleasant smile for an African chief. After the usual exchange of “Mbote, Mbote ” (the common salutation of the Congo), and the inspection of my tent and my bed, the chief called to his little son, who came running up with a splendid fish laid upon a banana leaf. It was freshly caught, and the bloom of life still hovered about its pinky scales. This, and a basket of eggs, was the chief’s present; and, as I was very hungry, and had not tasted fish for many weeks, the gift was welcome. The fish, indeed, was delicious, tasting and looking much like salmon, and there was so much flesh on it that I bad, first, fish-soup, then boiled-fish with egg- sauce, and then fish cutlets fried in butter, and then, after I had thoroughly dined off him, there still remained sufficient to satisfy the Zanzibaris. The next morning, at an early hour, we started under the guidance of the old chief to view the great Falls of Yellala—to view them, not as my predecessors had mostly done, from the summit of a high and distant hill, but to contemplate this wonderful rush of water from so near a point that the spray fell in fine showers over the waterproof I had fortunately donned. The journey thither was very fatiguing. At firstPALLABALLA AND YELLIlA. 79 the road led through plantations and pleasant forest glades, but soon quitted this grateful verdure and umbrageous foliage, and took us over a steep and stony hill, where the rocks were disposed in ascents which were almost stair-like, more resembling, how- ever, the sides of the pyramids, for* each step was fitted for a giant’s leg to mount, being often three feet high, Faraji, one of my Zanzibaris, hoisted me laboriously up each successive block, while the agile old chief, having wisely divested himself of his blue velvet, skipped up the steep ascent like any goat. At length we reached the highest point, and then, imagine my disappointment—instead of looking sheer down on the river, as I had hoped, another valley of waving grass, and yet another hillside lay before us. The descent was little less fatiguing than the climb had been, for the legs grew weary and palsied with continual jumps of three feet from block to block. Then the grass of the succeeding valley tore and scratched us, and as I mounted the next, and what seemed the last, ascent, I was convinced that the Falls of Yellala could never reward me for such exertions. However, we eventually ceased to ascend, and as the path began to round the summit of the hill, we looked down on an imposing scene, whilst the sudden turn in the path brought to our ears a deafening roar of falling water. It was a grand view, and the very position from which we gazed on this scene was enough to render80 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. it more than usually striking. The path hung just on the edge of a conical hill, and here, where we paused, a great slab of basalt jutted out over a terrible precipice. From this projection we looked down some hundred feet on the giant Congo, leaping over the rocks and dashing itself wrathfully against the imprisoning hills. Several islands bestrewed its stream, one especially remarkable from being a mass of velvet woods This was called the “ Island of Pelicans,” for numbers of these great birds used this inaccessible spot as a breeding-place. Before the first fall took place the river came gliding on so smoothly, with such a glassy sur- face, as if never suspecting the terrible conflict before it, and when at first it met the rocks and the descent it streamed over them almost unresis- tingly until, exasperated by repeated checks, in the last grand Fall of Yellala, it lashed itself into white and roaring fury, and the sound of its anger deafened one’s ears, and the sight of its foam dazzled the eyes. I had wished to pause long on this rock, and even make it the limit of my journey, hut the old chief, who was enterprising enough to personally conduct a party of Cook’s tourists (and who knows that he may not yet do so ?), insisted on my comple- ting the descent, and viewing the falls from their banks. I really doubted whether I could ever manage to do so without at any rate seriously damaging myself in the perilous enterprise, or even tumbling headlong into the river ; but somehow, byc11)('CRiV(>r C('V nr. hpforfi th&mtHx of }r//n/w-aPALLABALLA AND YELLIlA. 83 means of a rope and a stout rod, I managed at last to reach a ledge of rock, where the spray of the great waves fell, and thence I made my way to a series of little caverns in the wall of stone, whence I could view the Falls of Yellala at my ease. In all probability the Congo never descends here more than twelve feet at a time, but the constant succession of falls and the obstructing rocks lash the water into a state of indescribable fury. It is a splendid race of waves. Some seem to outstrip the others, and every now and then the water rebound- ing from the descent meets the oncoming mass, and their contact sends a shoot of foam and clouds of spray into the air. The rocks near the water’s edge are covered with a long, filamentous water-weed of intense verdure, and looking like masses of long, green hair. White plumbago and many bright flowers are growing in the interstices of the grey rocks, over which large blue and red lizards chase the flies that are half-stupidly basking in the sunlight. There is a great overhanging mass of rock which the shade never quite deserts, and where the native fishermen are frying the just-caught fish for their mid-day meal. The wicker-work fishing baskets and traps are lying about, emptied of their contents, of which such as are not being smoked or grilled are tied together in threes and fours, and put in the shade till their captors are ready to depart. Sometimes one finny monster, as big as a salmon, is lying apart by himself, still gasping with his poor expanding and G 284 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. contracting gills, as lie lies in a death agony in the dry, hot air. Soon his red gills and his entrails will he torn out and thrown where other heaps of fish refuse are already lying—centres of attraction to the buzzing flies and the fly-hunting lizards, and an all- absorbing theme of contemplation to the hungry hlaclr and white vultures that perch irresolutely on the neighbouring rocks. The chief, and most of the men who accompanied us, had stripped, and were bathing with much merri- ment and satisfaction in the little weirs and back- waters of the river. After his bath the prince of Yellala went and sat on a cool ledge of rock under the overhanging grotto. Here he invited me to come and partake of an impromptu meal of grilled fish. This I was in nowise loth to do; so we got out some salt, and some young ears of green Indian corn, which the thoughtful Zanzibaris had brought with them, and ate a most appetising breakfast of roasted maize and grilled fish—fish that a few minutes before had been gasping in the wicker-traps, and that were now served to us with their tails in their mouths, precisely as whiting are at home. When my sketches of the Falls were finished, I wished to return, and in spite of the noonday sun, began to clamber up the rocks, and regain the mountain path leading to the village. The old chief, wiser than I, tried hard to persuade me fo- rest by the cool river-side until evening ; hut, some- how, a strange fit of obstinacy possessed me, and IPALLABALLA AND YELL ALA. 85 ran a very near risk of getting sunstroke as a reward. The fierce heat radiating from the rocks — which, indeed, were too hot to be touched without hurting the hand—and the exhausting toil up this succession of stone blocks were too much for me, and, by the time I reached the outskirts of the groves bordering the village, I threw myself down in the grateful shade utterly sick and faint. I only mention this unimportant fact to show you that some Africans are really susceptible of thoughtful kindness; for, in this case, the old chief, seeing me exhausted and ill, became most concerned, and sent off one boy to the village to bripg me some of his precious rum, and another to the nearest brook for a calabash of cold water. Whilst these messengers were absent, he cut a large banana leaf, and fanned me with it gently, looking all the time most sympa- thising. I revived long before the rum came, though unfortunately the old chief insisted on my taking a drain of this nauseous compound. On my return to the village, he supported me carefully with one arm ; and altogether, though my slight indispo- sition was unworthy all this attention on his part, the Chief of Yellala impressed me as a kind-hearted old man. I have met with so many incidents of genuine feeling and sympathy from the natives everywhere on the Congo, that I am sure they are v people of finer natures than the degraded negroid coast tribes. That night, soon rested from my exertions at Yellala, I set off and walked back to86 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. Vivi, ten or eleven miles away; but this journey occasioned me no fatigue, for the sun was down, and the glorious full moon had uprisen in the soft grey air, shining upon hills, and rocks, and palms and native villages; while a feeling of absolute peace prevailed over all, and no noise was heard but the cry of the goat-suckers and the stealthy rustling of our footsteps in the herbage.CHAPTER IY. YIVI TO ISAtfGILA. V My Zanzibaris—The Grass—Nairn Mpanda—Behaviour of the Children—The Valley of the Loa—Pleasures of Bathing—The Camoensia—Sadika Banza—A Pet Fowl— The African Flora—The Buzi—The Bundi—Rain—Awk- ward Travelling—The Lulu—After the Storm—Hornbills and the Ducks—The Ngoma Falls—Stanley’s Name of Bula Matade—The Future of Ngoma—Isangila.CHAPTER IV. VIVI TO ISANGILA. CONGO GRASSES. Ov January 7th, 1883, I leftVivi for Isangila, and Stanley Pool. Mr. Stanley Avas very ill Avith fever90 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. the day I started; hut although he was burning and shivering alternately, he would not let me go forward without ascertaining that everything which could aid me in my journey had been placed at my disposal; perhaps the most valuable help he ren- dered me was to attach to my person, as escort, three of his favourite Zanzibaris, Faraji, Mafta yu Hali, and Imbono—and it will be long before I forget them, or cease to regret the almost affectionate service they bestowed on me. Before I start once more in imagination on my long journey up the Congo, these three faithful servitors deserve a few words of individual description. Mafta, you would at once call a thoroughly respectable person, and I was so soon impressed by his superior appearance that I made him head man of the caravan. He was perhaps approaching middle-age, and his well-made figure of moderate height was neatly dressed in white cloth. Though his face was nearly black, the features were well formed and very Arab-like. His eyes were quietly humorous, and though he rarely laughed, yet he could express much sedate merriment when his eyes twinkled and his. white teeth gleamed in concert. The next one was Faraji, a young man in all the plenitude of physical development, a good-natured giant, with a power in his muscular form that his lazy intellect hardly wotted of. Then came one of those worthy characters, Imbono, who illustrated theriri TO ISANGILA. 91 proverb, “ handsome is as handsome does,” for his uncouthness was forgotten when you found what an untiring and never-grumbling worker he was. Mafta was a very religious Mahomedan, who never touched any fermented liquor and looked pained when his laxer companions did so. Both Faraji and Imbono, although nominally Moslem in faith, became sad backsliders on the Congo. They drank fermented palm-wine when they could get it, and became very forgetful of the hours of prayer. Laziness was Faraji’s besetting sin, and he was a great framer of plausible excuses. Imbono had no fault as a servant, save that he was ugly. Having assembled my sixteen porters, and sent them on in advance to the first camping-place, I bade my last good-byes, and turning my back on white houses and white faces, rapidly descended the red hill, crossed the little brook, mounted another hill, passed quickly through a native village, where the dogs and the people rushed out to salute us, and then, gasping with heat and exasperated by the stony ascent, I arrived on the top of a small mountain and paused inevitably to regain my breath. Thence we trudged along through high grass that very much circumscribed the view. It. is terribly annoying that all-obscuring grass; one of the first and fore- most of Africa’s petty disagreeables. Some of this monstrous herbage scattered on us barbed seeds that were armed at one end by a sharp needle-point and surrounded with short reversed hairs, so that,92 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. once the seed entered the clothing it could only work inward and not backward. Soon our bodies were pricked and scratched and irritated by the sharp- pointed awns that had penetrated through the innermost clothing to the skin. Nguvi Mpanda, the next village on the road, is surrounded, as are most Congo hamlets, by splendid forest trees and well-kept plantations. Before we entered it the path wound through many fields of manioc (which gives the edible root so largely consumed in these regions), and in these fields women, who are cleaning the weeds away with strongly made native hoes, look up and scream to one another, “ Mundele, mundele,” and disperse with shrieks of frightened laughter. The little wondering children forget to follow their mothers in their astonishment, and stand gazing at me, open- mouthed with awe, as I pass, hut when I stop to pat, with kindly meant gesture, their little dolicho- cephalic shaven pates, their terror finds tongue, and they burst into prodigious roars of agonised fright, rushing with little pattering feet over the newly-tilled beds, never daring to look behind at the white bogy, nor to stop till they are in their mothers’ protecting arms, where they are received with laughing sympathy. The chief of Nguvi Mpanda stops us as we pass his verandah, under which he sits smoking with the village notables, and proffers palm-wine with hospitable insistance; which I do not like to decline, so I hastily quaff the freshly drawn “ malafu ”VIVI TO IBANG1LA. 93 from a narrow-necked gourd and then tramp on again behind the men through more plantations of manioc, ground-nuts, and Indian corn, till we arrive at another village, with another hospitable chief, this time wearing a very bushy beard and moustache. However, if we are to reach the river Loa that night, where the first camp is fixed, there is no time to dally on the road, so we hurry on, waving aside, with deprecating thanks, all offers of palm-wine, which, as a beverage, palls with constant repetition. Then the winding path—winding for no apparent reason but the innate tendency of men to walk in curves—becomes disagreeably rocky, all sharp stones and sudden descents; then a little bit of marsh intervenes, and so we are in the valley of the Loa, or in the valleys, rather, for canons and ravines in- tersect the hills in all directions. It is not a beautiful country hereabouts. It looks seared and yellow on the hillsides, and spotted with unpleasant, scrubby little bushes, giving no shade, and bearing unsightly, uneatable fruits. Along the little stream, where I go to take a bath, through the tall rank grass that borders the channel, buffaloes have passed and browsed some few hours before, and left some traces of their pasturing, the whole place being redolent of a farm-yard smell. I undressed, and placed my clothes on the stones. Oh ! the woes of inexperience. All along the road I had seen my men slapping themselves with leafy branches to keep off the flies, but I, being clothed, felt no94: A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. inconvenience, and therefore drew no inference from their actions. Now that I am naked myself, myriads of small black flies settle on me, and raise little points of blood wherever their needle-like probosces pierce the skin. My bath is but a short one, and is, while it lasts, total immersion, after which I hurriedly drag on my clothes, to screen my smarting, itch- ing skin. Black blood-sucking flies, little creatures, smaller almost than a midge, are a prominent annoy- ance in some parts of the “ cataract ” region. They are not so noticeable either on the lower river below the falls nor in the open forest country above Stanley Pool. The first night, after an eight-mile walk from Tivi, we camped above the little river Loa, in a country that was somewhat harsh and stony, although in the deep ravines there was thick forest. Here were growing in abundance large, compact bushes of Camoensia, a plant with a beautiful pendulous blossom of creamy-white, with a golden centre, and the very delicate, unequally shaped petals lined with a narrow bordering of dark brown. Camoensia * is a member of the great Leguminous or bean-like order of plants, but it has no very near allies in Africa or elsewhere. It was first noted by Welwitsch (the great Herman natu- ralist who so largely contributed to our knowledge of South-West African flora) in Angola, and he appropriately named so lovely and tender a * G. maxima, in this case—see illustration, Chapter XII.VIVI TO ISANG1LA. 95 flower after tiie great poet of his adopted country.* In the still warm night, the clove-like odour of these flowers becomes almost overpowering, but there is nothing sickly or narcotic in their perfume. The next day I stopped to lunch in a large village, Sadika Banza, the last collection of habitations we should meet with on our route. It was a largish native town, divided into several great squares by hedges of euphorbia. The chief, although said to be somewhat cruel to his subjects—he is indeed suspected of keeping up human sacrifices—is im- mensely polite to Europeans, much resembling in this certain Eastern potentates who receive distin- guished strangers with such hospitality that they feel obliged to overlook the sufferings of the poten- tates’ own people. The chief of Sadika Banza sent me eggs, bananas, and a fowl on my arrival. The fowl, a somewhat aged male, was not immediately needed, so he was tied by the leg to a tent-peg. While in this fettered condition, all the other village cocks took a mean advantage of him and advanced to battle. There would have been little left of my gift horse— certainly he was half-plucked—had I not intervened and carried him into my tent. Between this bird and myself a strange attachment arose. At first I deferred eating him because he was so tough and thin; then gradually he became a privileged pet, * Welwitsch was in the employ of the Portuguese Govern- ment.96 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. allowed to roost every night in- my tent. During the day-time, when we were marching, he was tied up with the cooking-pots and carried on a Zanzibari’s head, and directly the caravan stopped to rest, this Gallus Africanus was released, and trotted round the encampment, finding all sorts of inexpressibly deli- cious things in the thick grass, to which he lustily called the attention of a harem of phantom hens. In every village where we paused to rest he gave battle stoutly to the local chanticleers, and so iden- tified himself with the honour of the expedition that when he was killed and half-eaten one evening: bv a tiger-cat, we felt we had lost a doughty champion. Sadika Banza is like nearly every Congo village, placed on a high hill, and the path which leads up to it is arched over and hidden by the immensely thick grass which grows ten and twelve feet high. The trial to one’s patience occasioned by this terrible herbage is very great, and I am sure the grass produces more loss of temper, and causes consequently more nervous fever than anything in Africa. The act of continually pushing apart the intercrossed blades is alone very fatiguing to the arms, while the face is scratched and tickled by the seeds and awns, and the shins are bruised by constantly coming into contact with the stout, inflexible lower stalks. The grass effectually shuts out all prospect of one’s surroundings, and harbours and conceals snakes, buffaloes, and hostile natives. I don’t know a more despairing outlook than on arriving at theVIVI TO IS AN OIL A. 97 top of a hill in Africa to look down on a tract of waving grass. If it be a lake, you can either cross it in canoes or go round it; or if you look forth on a sterile desert you feel you may hurry over its sterility and at least see your way before you. But grass! How are you to know what dangers it does not veil ? Quagmires, pitfalls, human enemies, or noxious beasts ? Fortunately this part of the Congo region is not all grass; the valleys are filled with fine forests, where you may walk pleasantly at mid-day in the cool, sweet shade, under the grandly overarching trees. And here it is that the African flora is best represented. On each side of the path are beautiful cannas, thickly growing, with their crimson flower-spikes and yellow-green leaves telling out strongly against the dark purple-green foliage behind. In the interior of the wood may be discerned flecks of colour caused by the orange flowers of a species of Jatropha,* and by the delicate ... pinky-mauve blossoms of the Amomum. There are strange Arums and Anonas and many sprays of a scarlet Musscenda, which grows as a tall tree, and of a. large white Musscenda, clematis-like, trailing over the bushes and undergrowth. Myriads of little blue Commelynce deck the ground, and there are blue bean- flowers and white, purple Emilias and Gynurce, mauve and white Cleome, and large yellow mallows, while for absolute gorgeousness nothing can compare with the divers gourds and seed vessels of * J. multifida. H08 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. the many species of Cucurbitaceos, which when ripe, split open to expose the crimson interior, where the black seeds are laid in tempting rows to invite the birds to assist in their distribution. Indeed the whole effect in floral colouring like this is to suggest a tremendous competition going on amongst the many plants for the favourable notice of birds and insects, as if the flowers were advertising their advantages, and saying to the bees, “ Your patronage is earnestly solicited.” Certainly every taste is consulted, and every bait is offered in the way of gaudy colour and attractive scent, and all to ensure the possession of large families of children, and to effect their dispersal about the world. In tropical Africa, at least, is invalidated the theory of some naturalists, that the equatorial re- gions cannot offer flower-shows like those of the temperate zone. As we near the little river Buzi, the forest comes to an end, and on the further side of that stream the country is harsh and stony. We camped out on the top of a small eminence, and were much troubled by horrible little black flies which settled in clouds on one’s hands and face, and sucked blood until they fell off senseless. The next day we reached the JBundi. This stream lies at the bottom of a very deep ravine, and though it is over thirty feet broad, it flows absolutely hidden under the magnificent forest that overshadows its tumultuous course. The descent and ascent of thisVIVI TO ISANOILA. 99 ravine are extremely steep, and as the path lies through dank forest, and is on a clayey soil, the pas- sage requires considerable care to avoid slipping and rolling head foremost into the river. Several of the carriers do come down now and again very sharply in a sitting posture, but as it is a point of honour not to let go their loads, no casualty happens to the luggage. As the river was swollen and extremely rapid, I crossed it on the shoulders of Faraji, who was supported both behind and before by the other two Zanzibaris, and beyond getting my feet wet, I reached the other side in perfect comfort. Between the river Bundi and the Lulu lay a dis- mal region. One might say, fancifully, that it was under the enchantment of some ill-disposed wizard who had cast a spell over everything; perhaps the evil genius of Africa trying to discourage the pene- tration of white men into his secrets. The grass is tall, sometimes eight and nine feet high. When it is dry it cuts you like a razor. It slashes you across the face and over the backs of your hands. The blades intercross and bar your way like hostile sabres; they insultingly whip off your helmet; they fetter your legs and interlace themselves round your ankles ; but, like most African difficulties, they lose much of their resisting power if boldly encountered. Squeeze your hat on tightly, lower your head, put your hands in your pockets, and charge through them, and they will yield before you. But evidently the wicked genius, seeing this does not deter us, calls100 A JOURNET UP TEE RIVER CONGO. another agent to his aid. About midday, the sky being fairly serene, I notice near the horizon little masses of blue-grey cloud, hut, as they are blowing away from us, I think them unworthy of attention; until my men, who better know the tokens of African weather than I, look at them and say “rain,” and although I hope they may be wrong, gradually those little masses of cloud creep round the horizon, lifting themselves up bit by bit, and soon the whole heaven becomes covered with a pail of awful black cloud. We have arrived at a little camping-place under some shade, and here, in spite of my ideas of the connection between trees and lightning, my carriers advise me to stop. The rain had already begun to hiss down, but fortunately my tent was soon pitched, and my luggage brought under shelter. The ground, however, was very dank, and oppressed by the gloomy sky, I felt disposed to be miserable, especially as clouds of horrible mosquitoes tormented me continually, and sadly inflamed my hands with their bites. However, with that adroitness which most uncivilised races possess of quickly lighting a fire, my men had soon made a splendid and comforting blaze out of the fragments of wet timber that lay around, and I presently had water boiling and a steaming hot cup of coffee ready. Then, when I had hollowed out a round space in the centre of the tent, and filled it with red-hot wood ashes, which diffused a grateful sense of warmth and dryness, and at the same time routed the many insects, and when myV1VI TO ISANGILA. 101 tent was firmly shut against the rain, and I had satdown to drink my coffee and read some old newspapers, my feeling of discontent had completely vanished, and I passed a not unpleasant evening writing and reading. It is thus, by taking a little trouble to make one- self comfortable under unpromising circumstances, that one may alleviate many African disagreeables, and avoid much ill-health. But the next morning was prepared for us a still harder trial. Each broad blade of grass was charged with huge raindrops, and as we pushed through their interlacing stems they showered on us a generous tribute of water. In five minutes I was wet through, and with heavy clinging clothes had to pass on through the wet vegetation, the water from the leaves “ swishing ” on me as I went. Then followed worse still. The clayey path became interspersed with muddy pools, and soon it was a series of black morasses, connected by an occasional isthmus. Now, at last, the track frankly recognised the hypocrisy of pretending to be a path at all, and for four miles revelled in a wide marsh. This I had to cross on the shoulders of Faraji, who, if he had ever heard recited in the cafes of Zanzibar the voyages of Sinbad the Sailor, must have thought that I strongly resembled the “ Old Man of the Sea,” by the firm way in which I clung to his stout shoulders. However, he made little of his burden, and strode and splashed on through water and mud and sharp reeds, till at length, after the wearisome march, came a little102 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. sandy tract, then clear, water, and finally the solid earth reasserted itself. The evil genius must evi- dently have regarded this as his severest trial, for the water in parts reached to the chest of the tall Zanzibaris, and the footing was slimy and treacherous. Perhaps he was watching our difficulties under the form of one of those weird, uncanny marsh-birds which ever and anon rose from the stagnant ooze, and uttering a dismal cry, flapped its heavy-winged flight through the miasmatic air. It did not rain, but the atmosphere was charged with clammy moisture, and gloomy tiers of clouds shut out all glimpses of sunshine and brightness. When we at length reached firm land, the quaking marsh was exchanged for harsh rock and sharp-cutting stones. Nasty, ill-tempered looking little hushes, all gnarled and crooked with peevishness, and hearing lead- coloured, uneatable fruits, dotted the dull red soil. There was no sign of animated life—no birds or butterflies; all seemed deserted and lone. But the hour of our deliverance drew nigh; from a stony height by this time attained, I suddenly looked down on the river Lulu, which was rolling its brown flood through a beautiful and thickly-wooded ravine. We hastened towards it and were soon at its banks; hut the sorcerer’s power was not yet exhausted. The river was in full flood, and had swept away the rough suspension-bridge of lianas, which was used on occasions when the stepping-stones were covered. So I had to sit down and wait till the ZanzibarisVIVI TO ISANOILA. 103 arrived—for I always walked so quickly that I was invariably in advance of the caravan—and two of them carried me across the blood-red stream, charged with the red soil of the hills which the heavy rains of the preceding night had washed by many tempo- rary rivulets into its swollen current. On the other side of the river Lulu every one seemed inclined to repose from their fatigues. The loads were all dis- posed round the camping-place, the tent was pitched, and the breakfast put in preparation. In the mean- time the majority of the men went down to bathe. I took off my wet things and laid them on great boulders to dry, and also went to wash in the river. The water was refreshing and cool, but unfortunately the horrible little black flies were still here, and ren- dered any uncovering of one’s person torture, for they settled in clouds on the naked skin, spotting it with little points of blood. After a good rest and an enjoyable meal, I started ahead once more with my Zanzibaris. The influence of the bad genius was clearly over, and that of the good fairy had begun. A different atmosphere reigned here. The lowering clouds were lifting and the genial sun was dispersing the general humidity. In the forest through which the little track or foot-wide path meanders, the universality of beauty fills me with quiet delight. Delicious, penetrating scents from the many flowers embalm the air; the chirping of insects and the pleasant low cries of birds gently vibrate on the ear, and the eye is continually feasted with the displays104 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. of colour or the endless deploying of graceful forms. Looking up towards the sky, you see the cerulean blue chequered with a fantastic lace-work of leaves, and little specks and dapplings of sunlight are scat- tered lightly over the outer groups of foliage, but hesitate timidly before the great depths of solemn gloom in the heart of the forest. Much animal life is evident here. At almost every turning, the path introduces you brusquely to a happy family of monkeys, who have descended from the tree-tops to feed on the small ground-growing berries, or to plunge their greedy, wasteful fingers into the crimson pulp of the straying gourds. They bound up into the trees on your approach, taking refuge, well within gunshot, on large platforms and nests of twigs, which they seem to have constructed on the upper branches. It would be absolute brutality to take advantage of their confidence, and bring them down with a bullet from your Winchester, when you have plfenty of pro- visions in your cases, and stand in no immediate need of roast monkey. Besides, if you are but discreet, and behave as becomes Nature’s guest* your great hostess will show you many of her quaint and beautiful children. The green fruit-pigeons startle you in the trees with their strange cry, commencing with a whirring noise, two or three clucks, and ending up with a sweet and prolonged coo. The bee-eaters are swooping in eccentric circles on the many flying insects, and little hornbills sit in staid immobility on bare and exposed branches, watchingVIVI TO ISANGILA. 105' the bee-eaters, as if they would like to imitate them, but felt that such great exertions were unbecoming* These hornbills, large or small, come to the ground to feed almost invariably, no doubt, because it is there that most of their food, such as grass- hoppers and the exuviae of animals, usually lies. Still they are a curious instance of an arboreal type of bird gradually becoming terrestrial again. The great ground hornbill which is found pretty well all over Africa, except in the purely forest region, is a most exaggerated case, for it absolutely avoids the trees. Certain cuckoos, parrots, and woodpeckers become ground-loving birds in spite of their zygodactyle feet. I can imagine poor Dame Nature nearly losing her temper with, for instance, such a thing as a tree-duck. “ Whatever,” she must say, “ made you go and take to living on trees when I had shaped and adapted your feet and your body for the water ? Why can’t you know your own mind ? ” But the tree-duck and the ground hornbills and parrots are influenced by the same cause that makes a man who has been brought up as a land surveyor qualify himself for the Stage—the struggle for ex- istence, the necessity of finding a place somewhere in life’s economy. Some such thoughts as these beguile my way through many a mile of forest and hill, till at length, arriving on the Congo bank at Ngoma, my attention is effectually diverted to the imposing spectacle of the Ngoma Falls. The standpoint from which one106 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. best views them is a little platform or quay pro- tected by a breakwater, and projecting somewhat into the river. Here lately stood an immense mass of precipitous rock; but Stanley, in opening a rapid route to Isangila, blasted the side of this cliff, and over the debris constructed a passable way. It was this that gained for him the name of Bula Matade, or the stone-breaker, among the astonished natives. From this quay at Ngoma you command a splendid view. Nearly in front of you two branches of the Congo, separated by a long island, come rushing to a coalition, like two brothers whom a temporary obstacle has separated, or like two great political parties which, in view of the difficulties farther on, agree to coalesce, and carry off between them the lead that has hitherto been in the possession of a mild and temporising eddy. At the end of the island, right across the river, are strewn hidden rocks but over these the two meeting currents leap triumphantly, and the waves madly race with a joyous clamour to their fraternal union. Some distance after the junction, froth and roar are over, but a great and irresistible body sweeps on its course, letting no obstacle stem its overwhelming tide. On the island the trees bordering the water tremble and nod paralytically as the great current strikes against them, but higher up the foliage is. massive, rich and majestic, and stands haughtily unmoved by the racing flood beneath, like an unbending aris- tocracy superciliously regarding the mad progress ofVIVI TO ISANGILA. 107 the democratic torrent that seems so far beneath it. But the current, however madly, is flowing towards an. end, the Sea; and it either leaves the great trees far, far behind it on its course, or, with cruel, overwhelming force washes away their foundations, and carries them, poor victims, to be dashed to pieces in the cataracts, and to strew with their shorn frag- ments the distant shores where the waves of river and sea may drift them. The views of water, wood, and rock are so fine from here, on this little quay, that in my imagi- nation I see the day when civilization shall have covered the Congo, and when places like these will be the resort of tourists and lovers of nature; when there shall he a railway from the coast, a station a mile off, “ Glare des Chutes de iSTgorna,” with omnibuses and touts—“ Par ici, monsieur, pour 1’Ho tel du Beau Rivage ; ” “ The Falls Inn, sir, very comfortable, sir, splendid view,” and so on. Then there will be prospectuses and advertisements in the “ Gazette d’Isangila ” and the “ Congo Times.” What embarrassment one will naturally feel at having to choose between the Falls Inn and its “ twenty acres of tropical forest attached,” and the Hotel du Beau Rivage with its billiards and dancing casino ! As I left the spot where I was ruminating on these possibilities, and entered the “ twenty acres of tropical forest attached,” I could not escape a pang of regret at the thought of the degradation and banalite that this coming civilization would entail.A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. 108 How lovely the forest looked in its virgin state ! Man had meddled with it just enough to make a decent path, hut no more. One could look down, down, down through the mazes of green leaves and grey houghs at the twinkling water, which flowed under the massive trees in a still and quiet backwater. It was a beautiful semi-transparent screen between me and the ardent sun, who, through the great and spreading leaves, sent shafts of light and glorified whole masses of foliage with an aureole of golden green. Up above, in the dim purple solitudes of the forest, there were mysterious possibilities, an endless field’ for conjecture and for the flight of fancy. What strange creatures might not live in its depths ? What sylvan tragedies went on there at night, when the leopard made his descent on a family of monkeys just asleep, and awakened the forest with a momentary clamour. Perhaps, here at night you would hear the great elephants tearing down saplings and feeding themselves with juicy leaves and young shoots. At any rate you know the vast green gloom stretches far, far away in one direction, and that you will not come suddenly upon a row of villas at the other end. And when, satiated and filled with beauty, you do leave the wood, it is quite comforting to continue your road along a plain hill- side which calls for no admiration. Beautiful scenery is as overwhelming sometimes as the society of very distinguished people—the incessant admira- tion it calls for is fatiguing. We crossed a prettyVIVI TO ISANGILA. 109 little river, and camped out that night on the rising- ground above it. Everybody seemed contented and satisfied. I had a well-cooked dinner, and sat long afterwards looking at the southern constellations- and the crescent moon. The men chatted and sang round their fires in a happy state of fulness, and 1 went to sleep that night convinced that all the dis- agreeables of the journey were over, and that to- morrow morning would see me comfortably settled at Isangila. But on the morrow, alas ! the sky was lowering, and soon after our departure the rain began. All the pathways were turned into rushing brooks of red water ; the descent towards the Congo became a terrible glissade, and soon 1 was thoroughly, hopelessly wet through as I half ran, half waded along the swampy paths, while a continuous sheet of water acted on me like a shower-bath. At last I turned a corner round the hillside I was descending, and there, conspicuous on a rising mound was the station of Isangila. The path changed into a broad causeway, up which I walked, feeling, now that I was no longer in the wilds, somewhat embarrassed by my disreputable appearance. However it was absolutely necessary to change my clothes in order to avoid a rheumatic attack, so I hastened to present myself to the chief of the station, who fortunately would not • wait for an explanation, but hurried me off to a room, and busied himself so effectively in serving out fresh garments, and in preparing a hot bath, that before many minutes were past, I had quickly peeled110 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. off my soaked clothes, and had washed and clothed myself in dry, if somewhat expansive, habiliments. I was seated at a comfortable repast, and drinking endless cups of hot coffee as one by one my be- draggled men came in, their burdens terribly soaked. I spent the remainder of the day in learning the worst, but fortunately although so unprotected my luggage had very little suffered within. The rain, which had begun at six this morning, lasted for twelve hours without intermission; a thoroughly hopeless, drenching, furious, persistent downpour, and not at all the violent, but fleeting thunder-shower one imagines so characteristic of the tropics.CHAPTER Y. ISANGILA TO MANYANGA. The Isangila Fall—Position of the Village—A Native Market—The Manioc—Cookery for Explorers—Ground- nut Oil—Toffee—Captain Tuckey’s Expedition—Journey to Manyanga—Eiyerside Scenery—Islands—A Whirlpool— The Pratincoles—Mbote—Lieutenant Nilis—Disturbance at Manyanga—Different Mediums of Exchange—A Native Diet—Woman in Africa—Mlongo-Mlako—Ntombo Mataka Falls.Baphia nitida. CHAPTER Y. ISANGILA TO MANYANGA. Isangila is a pleasantly situated station on a com- manding bluff almost oyer-banging the river. From the terrace of the dwelling-house one of the grandest views on the Congo may be obtained. I114 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVEB CONGO. Right in front across the river there is a great towering cliff like that above “ Hell’s Cauldron,” which I have previously described, a hill cloven in twain, its scarped sides showing the bare purple red earth ; but its sombre look is relieved by the bright green grass that clothes the little knolls and irregu- larities varying its sheer descent towards the Congo, FIRST ISANGILA FALL. and the graceful crown of forest which lends a pretty finish to its somewhat gaunt head. At its base, the river, which has hitherto been gliding onwards with deceitful smoothness and a glassy surface, suddenly breaks into white foam and frothy waves, but only that part of it near the base of this cliff; the other half of the great river gpes rolling on smooth and unruffled, still mirroring the clouds andISANGILA TO MANYANGA. 115 the hills, till at length the whole stream takes one great bound over some hidden ledge of rocks, and the mass of this mighty current is lashed and churned into a terrible conflict of waves, flight across its breadth seethes a zone of dazzling foam, and from the constant oncome and recoil of the masses of water rise tall columns of spray into the air, SECOND ISANGILA FALL. descending in glittering drops on the tree-covered islands, and forming under the sun’s rays fitful gleams of rainbow colours that at first seem hallucinations of the eye. Below this great Isangila Fall (rapid is almost a better word) the harassed fiver breaks away into many little far-off bays of quiet water where it seems to dally and rest amid the wooded i 2116 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER GONGO. islets, pausing to collect itself for another rush towards the ocean. At this opportune spot the river Lufu, come from a great distance southwards, ventures timidly to join itself to the great Congo stream, and fortunately finds it in a placid mood, smiling at the sky, and gently lapping the shores of its verdant archipelago. Tsangila station is on a well chosen and healthy site, and the beautiful views around it alone render it a pleasant sojourn; but hitherto it has suffered some disadvantage from being a long way off the native villages and markets, which are situated at some little distance from the river, and along the native roads in the interior. The fact is, that from Stanley Pool to the coast the native trade—or ivory —routes do not closely follow the river Congo, but rather diverge from it right and left, taking a more direct route to the coast. The southern road goes from Stanley Pool to Sao Salvador and debouches on the sea at Ambriz and Ambrizete; and the route along the northern side of the Congo runs also at a distance of several miles from the river’s bank, and divides into two principal branches, one going from Manyanga to the river Niari-Kwilu and the sea, and the other rejoining the Congo at Boma. Con- sequently, the real village of Isangila is situated on this important trade route and at a distance of six or seven miles from the river. This renders it somewhat more difficult to procure plenty of fresh food from the markets ; but by degrees the natives,ISANGILA TO MANTANGA. 117 never long in finding ont where their best interests lie, are shifting their great weekly market nearer to the newly-founded station. One of these native markets is a curious and in- teresting sight to see. They are generally held every four or every eight days, either weekly or fortnightly, for the native week is of four days only. One of the days of the week often bears a distinctive name of “ selling,” or “ market ” day. The natives will often come a hundred miles to attend one of these big markets, and there are generally over a thousand present. They bring sheep, goats, pigs, Muscovy ducks, and fowls for sale or barter, the fowls most carefully packed in long wicker cages, fastened between two stout poles conveying at each end. Eggs are usually carried in large finely-plaited baskets; indeed some of their basket-work is so tightly made that it will hold water. At the markets between Isangila and Manyanga five hundred eggs may be bought at a time. The natives also sell fresh vegetables, pumpkins, sweet potatoes, and even a wild cabbage, bananas, plan- tains, pine-apples, ground-nuts, sugar cane, maize, kola-nut tobacco, and “ Kikwanga.” Kikwanga needs a word of special, mention, it is such an impor- tant article of consumption in the Congo dietary. The root of the manioc,* or cassada, a very ancient introduction from Brazil, is taken and pounded into a fine white pulp. This is left to soak for about * Manihoi utilissima.118 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONOfO. twenty-four hours in running water (possibly to rid the substance of a certain acid poison attributed to the root), and is then allowed to ferment. When worked up into a consistence of stiff dough it is divided into portions, and each portion is wrapped up in a large green leaf until wanted for cooking. Kikwanga tastes and looks like sour dough, but it is highly nutritious. The best way of eating it is to cut it into very thin slices, and to fry these in butter, or if butter be not procurable, in ground-nut oil, easily extracted from Arachis hypogcea. Perhaps a simple receipt for doing so might interest intending African travellers who are reading these pages. Take a bushel of ripe ground-nuts that have previously been dried in the sun, pound them to a pulp, and put them in a cauldron of boiling water. The oil will rise to the surface, and can easily be skimmed off and put apart into a vessel. The residue is excellent fattening food for fowls, and the oil itself is almost indistinguishable from the best olive in taste. Indeed most of the olive-oil we use in Europe is nothing but the oil of ground-nuts, which are exported largely from West African ports to Marseilles, to be there manufactured and flavoured into various salad oils christened by different names. This oil of ground- nuts is excellent as a kitchen grease and as a lamp oil. I will even give-you another recipe in which this substance may be advantageously employed. Take a quantity of sugar-canes, some nine or ten sticks, peel them, cut them up into small" cubes, and mashISANG1LA TO MANYANGA. 119 these to a pulp, straining off the abundant liquor into a large pot; put this over the fire to boil, and at the end of an hour and a half you will rejoice to find the sweet syrupy liquor reduced to a considerable quantity of gluey barley-sugar. If you find yourself as I did for several months without any other form of saccharine matter, this will make a useful addition to your daily fare, and when mixed and cooked with the right proportion of ground-nut oil will give you a most toothsome toffee. Little expedients and shifts like these serve considerably to lighten the explorer’s lot, and to render palatable many forms of native food. An African market with so many commodities to sell and so many eager sellers and loungers, is a most animated scene. The din of voices may be heard afar off, and when you enter the great open square, where, under the shade of great trees, perhaps a thousand people are disposed in little chaffering groups round their heaps of wares, it is worse than the parrot-house at the Zoological Gardens. The women are the keenest traders, they haggle and scream and expostulate, and chuckle aside over their bargains, whilst the hulking men lounge about in good-hu- moured listlessness, or squat in rows stolidly smoking. Although the strife of tongues is great, few real quarrels occur. There is in most cases a chief of the market, perhaps an old Fetish man, who regulates all disputes, and who so heavily fines both litigants that all are chary of provoking his arbitration. This120 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. babel lasts but one day, and then for the rest of the “ week ” or “ fortnight ” the market-place is void and desolate; only the old wicker baskets, banana-skins, corn-shucks, feathers, and egg shells remain to witness to the great assemblage which has taken place. Of such a kind is the great market near Isangila, and there are similar gatherings at Manyanga, Lutete, and in proximity to most of Mr. Stanley’s stations. Before I leave the subject of Isangila to proceed with my description of the river, I might mention that this was almost the farthest point reached by Captain Tuckey’s expedition, and was called by them “ Sangalla.” Some of them did, indeed, penetrate nearly as much farther as about where “ Baynesville,” a station of the Baptist mission, is situated, but the general researches of the expedition may be said to have been arrested at Isangila. Poor Captain Tuckey here thought that the greatest difficulties were van- quished, and imagined that the comparatively tranquil stream which he saw before him indicated the absence or unimportance of further cataracts. Had he not broken down and died at that time would he possibly have been able to struggle past the greater difficulties beyond, with a fiercer population opposing his advance ? I think not, and his expedition appears from the very first, hopelessly and sadly foredoomed to those who read its records with the fuller know- ledge of to day. The journey * to the next station, Manyanga, may * A distance of about 86 English miles.1SANGILA TO MANYANGA. 121 be made by water, 'the rapids on this part of the Congo being just passable in a stout boat, or by land along the north bank of the river; but this route is most fatiguing, and occupies at least eight days, whereas by water it is only four or five. I left Isangila on January 16th with my three Zanzibaris, to go up this part of the Congo in a little steam- launch the “ Royal,” now removed to the upper river, and forming part of Mr. Stanley’s flotilla. The scenery along this section of the Congo is at first very pretty. A fine papilionaceous tree, Baphia sp., was abundant, and its blossom sent forth a delicious fragrance. The banks were generally richly forested, and masses of creepers overspread the riverside trees. Sometimes they appeared like a green cloth thrown lightly over the foliage, showing its masses and forms distinctly marked underneath. Sometimes they formed a delicate green cobwebbery, or seemed great walls of vegetation, looking as if carefully trimmed into uniformity of surface, but often scarcely a foot in thickness. I can hardly give a just idea of these beautiful examples of vegetable architecture. Often these creepers would stretch out as it were a fresh series of , constructions, their long, straight lianas acting as scaffold poles. Then would come the horizontal, interlacing arms, which soon formed a giant lattice-work, and on this foundation the beauti- ful and uniform foliage breaks out, until soon great walls and enclosures are made, generally round some monster tree. How lovely these arbours seemed to122 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. rest in! What an idyllic life one might fancy it possi- ble to lead amid these fairy mazes like tenderly veiled transformation scenes, where the brilliant, glaring sky and its rudely positive white clouds are so crossed and recrossed by the boughs and liana ropes that the glory of daylight seems to shine afar off beyond the meshes of our fairy realm, where the sun’s rays filter through the leaf-masses in varying intensity of green- ish golden light. Beautiful indeed it is, where the the giant kingfisher (GeryU maxima). monotony of verdure is enlivened by the mauve , con- volvuli with crimson centres, by the pale yellow flowers of the creeping cucurbits, whose orange-red gourds shine like little lamps amid the diapered foliage. The giant-speckled kingfisher and his little active black and white brother haunt the secluded creeks that these walls of upright vegetation enclose; and on the gaunt, bare branches, forcing their way through the tender interlacing creepers like wild protesting arms trying to rid themselvesISANGILA TO MANYANGA. 123 of a clinging and deceitful embrace, on these gnarled and whitened boughs tbe fishing-eagles perch, greet- ing our approach with cheerful boisterous screams. A “ giant ” heron, too, sat on a branch amid sombre shade, where he would have remained quite undis- tinguishable from the grey boughs and boles around him, but overcome with a spasm of tardy fear, he flounced out from his retreat, nearly knocked against the funnel of the steamer, and flapped his huge wings with frightful strivings to get away'. Here and there the Congo became strewn with rocky islets, sparsely crested with trees ; and in and out of these the stream was whirling and eddying and bubbling over the hidden rocks. We stopped at one of these islands, and at this spot the lighter we had been hitherto towing had to be made fast alongside the steam-launch, for together we were to cross a formidable whirlpool. When we turned the island we saw the vortex with great flakes of foam like balls of cotton-wool dancing madly in a per- petual round. Full pressure was put on, and in we went—-wurra !—and out again, almost at right angles, .so that some of the balls of . foam, like bewildered captives in an enchanter’s magic circle, are set free by our sudden breaking through the meshes and go gaily floating down the stream. Sometimes there are long stretches of low rocks in the river, looking like rows of slates in a builder’s yard; and on the shore of the stream and along the island beaches would show banks of dazzling white124 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER OONGO. sand, apparently above flood-mark, since numbers of pratincoles had made their nests there. These pretty little birds, called scientifically Glareola* are really small waders allied to the plovers, with, perhaps, even a far off relationship to pigeons and sand-grouse; but to a superficial observer they seem merely large, stout swallows, and certainly resemble these birds by the way in which they pursue the insects over the surface of the water, flying low and catching their prey in mid-flight. On the Congo, between Isangila and Manyanga, they are found in flocks of over a thousand at a time, absolutely covering the isolated rocks on which they perch.f Perhaps their presence in such, large numbers is the reason why in this stretch of the river mosquitoes are so happily absent. In the broader parts of the Congo, groups of trees stand in the very middle of the river, stemming its rapid flood. They must mark the sites of rocks and banks uncovered in the dry season, or, more probably, of newly submerged islands, for otherwise the seedling tree could hardly have attained sufficient growth in one dry season to withstand the river’s flood. Some distance beyond the Itunzima Falls, which are not * Probably G. Nordmani. | In the “Last Journal of W. A. Forbes,:” wbo is one of the latest and saddest victims to a love of scientific research, I find the following extract referring to his journey up the Niger (p. 514, “ Ibis,” Oct. 1883). u On one of the banks, Glareola cinerea in thousands, with a few of a darker one ( ? Nordmani), one of which I got. ...”ISANGILA TO MANYANGA. 125 very striking, the Congo broadens greatly; but nearing Manyanga, the scenery of the river becomes in the highest degree commonplace. Low red hills, streaked and spotted with dull yellow-green, and fringed at their bases with scanty forest, border the great watercourse, which itself seems to have renounced all its high spirits and to have assumed a wearisome platitude of expression. Groups of natives on the south bank are squatting on the sand, with their fishing-nets put up to dry. Their dogs are prick-eared and spotted yellow and white, exactly like those in a Noah’s ark. They salute us with loud cries of “ Mbote',” a frequent polite salutation (pronounced in English, “ Mbawtay ”), which means “good,” “well,” “smoothly,” and, in fact, all sorts of conciliatory things, and is commonly used along the Congo, between the coast and . the Equator. “ Mbote ” is a most useful term to acquire, and only practice can teach the different meanings which varied modulations of the voice may give to it. On the Upper Congo, beyond the Pool, when entering a strange village, and seeing rather suspi- cious looks directed at my uncanny white face, I would say in enquiring tone “ Mbote, Mbote?” and then the natives would either relax into a grin and repeat the word volubly, or in obstinate cases scowl more determinedly, and yell “ Mbote ve, Mbote v6! ” (ve, pronounced vay, means “ No ”). It can be made a very pretty word; and when a smiling native says to you rapidly, “ Mbote, Mbote', Mbote,” it is like126 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER OONOO. patting you on the back, and is, indeed, often accom- panied by that caressing action. On the morning of the fifth day after leaving Isangila we arrived at Many an ga. This station is decidedly “ a city set upon a hill,” and people with weak lungs or unsteady hearts may well stand appalled at such an ascent as lies before them up that winding red road, nay, even hesitate as to whether they will not sooner seek hospitality at the snug little Baptist Mission which lies embosomed in trees by the water side. But generally the hospit- able chief of Manyanga station descends from his eyrie to meet his guests, and, aided by the stout alpenstock which is lent you, and beguiling the steep ascent with a pleasant interchange of question and answer, you forget to murmur at its steepness, and find yourself quite unexpectedly before the verandah of the principal dwelling-house. I had pleasant days at Manyanga whenever I stopped there. Its chief, Lieutenant Nilis, was a charming and an intellectual man, who knew how to make life at his station most agreeable for his guests. To his initiative the entire present construction and arrangement of the buildings are due. There are three houses for Europeans, many capacious brick-built stores, and quite a large “ coloured ” town of Zanzibari, Kabinda, and other native huts. The making of sunburnt-bricks from the surrounding soil has turned out very successful, and the bricks thusISANQILA TO MANYANG A. 127 made are better adapted for the construction of durable buildings than wood, which is so liable to the attacks of white ants, or stone which is both costly and damp-retaining. Manyanga has been the scene of the only serious disturbance which has as yet taken place between the expedition of Mr. Stanley and the natives. While the former was away at Stanley Pool, dragging his boats to the upper river, the numerous natives of this well-populated district picked a quarrel with the little garrison of the station in the hope of find- ing it an easy prey. The dispute is said to have first arisen in a “ question de pores.” That is to say, that the natives complained that the pigs of the station played havoc with their fields of manioc and maize ; perhaps they did, but the chief of the station (the predecessor of Nilis) was quite willing to indemnify the natives for any harm his pigs may have occasioned to their crops had they not taken the law into their own hands and carried off the pigs. It was, in fact, for them nothing but an excuse for a general plunder they had long been meditating; for we are no longer in the district of the “Congo ” people proper—the gentle, indolent race of Vivi and Isangila—but in the country of the much fiercer and more energetic Ba-sundi, the country of “ Sundi ” heard of by Tuckey, a tribe who long stood between the races of the interior Congo basin and the traders of the coast. However, they in this case found out their mistake. The besieged garrison128 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. sallied out with spirit, drove away the host of attack- ing natives, and burnt down their villages in re- prisals. Then the natives, quickly recognising the only thing they bow to—superior force—came to terms, and paid fine in land imposed on them as a war indemnity. Three months afterwards they were the best of friends with the white man, and were the first amongst the Congo tribes to furnish of their own free will hired porters to transport the goods of the expedition. Now Manyanga is so entrenched and fortified that probably none but a European army could capture it, and its communications with the Congo are so admirably arranged that the river acts as a continual basis of operations, whence supplies may always he obtained by steamer from Isangila. Manyanga is built on a narrow plateau sur- mounting a precipitous hill of perhaps four hundred feet in height. There is a slight bay, or inlet, of the Congo at its base where boats can be safely moored in a little backwater of the Congo. On either side of the hill is a deep ravine with nearly precipitous sides, so that it is nearly impregnable on three sides, and only the narrow neck of the level plateau which connects with the hills of the interior has to be defended. Through the ravine on the right hand of the station tumbles a little stream of clear water, much haunted by crocodiles in its lower course. On the further side of the stream, at a much lower level than the station, is situated the Baptist Mission, very bright and pretty in outwardK THE RIVER CONGO SEEN FROM THE PLATEAU AT MANYANGA.ISANGILA TO MANYANGA. ]31 appearance, embowered in fine groves and close to a charming little creek of the river, but for all this unhealthy, I believe. It is one of the few places where I have heard of dysentery on the Congo. One of the Baptist missionaries recently died from that disease, contracted at the mission station of Manyanga. On the other hand the sanitary reputation of the plateau is undoubtedly good, and there is a freshness and breeziness in the air that you miss down below by the river side. I am convinced Mr. Stanley has done wisely, apart from strategic reasons, in placing all his stations on the highest ground attainable. Manyanga is a great food centre. I have already hinted at its abundantly supplied markets, where eighty or ninety fowls, fifty goats, troops of sheep, and hundreds of eggs may be purchased at a single time. The favourite medium of exchange here is blue glass beads, and handkerchiefs and stuffs will scarcely be taken at any sacrifice. Indeed it is quite a false idea to entertain that you can go anywhere in Africa with any sort of bead and any kind of cloth. Each district has its peculiar tastes and fancies to con- sult, and you might starve in one place with bales of goods that would purchase kingdoms in another. In one part of the Congo basin red is the favourite colour, in another blue, in a third green, and I have come across some tribes where white cloth far out- valued coloured or patterned stuffs. Between Yivi and Isangila you will find red handkerchiefs, striped cloth, brass “tacks,” gin, and wire useful. At K 2132 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. Manyanga blue beads rule the market; at Stanley Pool brass rods. On the Upper river, besides most of the articles already mentioned, “ cowries ” come into use, and are used freely as small change. At Manyanga, owing to the abundance of native food, and the scarcity of nearly every European article of diet which then existed, we were able to test the possibility of living solely on the products of the country, a state of affairs which, owing to the expense and difficulty of transport, is very likely to occur, and must eventually largely influence the con- ditions of colonisation. On the whole I had little to complain of. We had no tea, coffee, cocoa, wine, sugar, butter, or bread, it is true, but with a little ingenuity substitutes were found for many of these adjuncts to European living. The goats gave plenty of milk, and we drank it hot, and u made believe ” it was tea. Palm wine was our only intoxicant, and “ Kikwanga ” in some way took the place of bread. Palm-oil fried our meats, enriched our stews, and fed the lamps that lighted up our evening meal. We had superb desserts of massive pine-apples, bananas made puddings that were richly sweet, and plain- tains took the place of potatoes. I never ate with better appetite and rarely lived more happily. The daily arrivals of natives at the station were always an amusement. Sometimes they would come with a baaing and protesting goat or sheep for sale. One day a party of men arrived with a very stout lady of whom they wished to dispose for her value inISANGILA TO MAN YANG A, 133 blue beads. She was quite the thing for me, they were convinced, and would make an excellent lady- help for my next expedition. There was no end to her catalogue of graces and accomplishments. She wore moreover a handsome nose-ring, which would be given in to clench the bargain. Unfortunately the price asked was quite beyond my means, nor was Nilis able or willing to acquire her services, so, in common with some goats and fowls we had also declined, she was reluctantly returned to her rela- tives. There is no doubt that if the native porters can be induced, as is not infrequently the case, to bring their women with them, these latter prove a valuable adjunct to the expedition. They carry burdens nearly as heavy as those borne by their husbands and brothers, and carry them much more cheerfully. They wash and cook better than the men, and have a way of preparing manioc for food that seems beyond masculine knowledge or skill. In steady hard work and endurance of fatigue they certainly excel the other sex; they ask less pay, they eat less food, and, .in short, I should seriously recom- mend the utilization of female labour in the forma- tion of all African expeditions. Many Zanzibari women accompanied their husbands across Africa in Stanley’s great journey, and he writes, touchingly, in the ‘ Dark Continent,’ respecting their patient en- durance and dogged perseverance. The fact is, woman in Africa has not emerged from her proper status—her proper African status,m A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. i mean. When this great continent is fairh’ civilized, is traversed by railroads, and intersected by canals, when all the rough, hard, coarse battling with natural obstacles is over, then man—African man—can afford, if he will, to indulge in a more delicate and fmer-natured spouse, who is worthy to be conceded the privileges which chivalry grants MLONGO-MLAKO, KING OP DANDANGA. to the artificial weakness of her sex. At present the women lead a harder life than the men, and they are consequently inferior to the better-nurtured males in mental development and physical beauty. Conscious of their lower grade in society, they are thus ever anxious to merit by their assiduity in well-doing the approbation of the nobler sex.ISANG1LA'TO MANTANGA. 135 There are several native “kings” round Manyanga. One of them was a constant visitor at the station, and a terrible beggar, always on the look-out for cloth and beads. His name was Mlongo-Mlako, and he was chief of a town or district called Dandanga. Shortly after my arrival, he made a call on us, avowedly to see the new white man, and probably also with- the idea that there might be a little “ cloth ” to be given away. His majesty of Dandanga nearly fell a victim to the superstitions of his people a short time ago. A wife of one of his sub-chiefs fell ill and died; and, as is always the case in this country, the medicine- man was called upon to say who had “ bewitched ” her. He assembled a sort of coroner’s inquest, and they came to the unanimous conclusion that King Mlongo had killed the woman with his sorceries. The wretched monarch would have had to take “ poison-water ” had not an English mission- ary opportunely arrived at his village, and laughed the people out of their foolish superstition. To please the white stranger, the king was pardoned by the fetish man, but pardoned reluctantly, for his real sin was not having bewitched a woman, but being a terrible miser. Avarice amongst these people is considered the blackest of crimes, and had king Mlongo been in the habit of freely lavishing his gin and his cloth on his subjects, his loving people would not have fixed upon him as a sorcerer, nor the heir-apparent have been so active in the136 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. prosecution. He was very little grateful to his benefactor, however, and immediately presented himself at the mission, not to thank its head for saving his life, but to demand a piece of cloth because his life was saved. On the occasion of this particular visit to the station, he was accompanied by the widowed chief whose wife he was supposed to have WIDOWED ONE. ’ THE bewitched. They were now on the most amicable terms, and the widowed one, having daubed his ugly face with charcoal in sign of mourning, gave himself up to unlimited merriment, and was thinking, he told me, of marrying again. Above Manyanga all further navigation of the river ceases, and there are quite close to the station the great falls of Ntombo Mataka, where the successiveISANGILA TO MANYANGA. 137 descents of the Congo, as nearly as anywhere, approach cascades in appearance. Seen from the heights above, these falls appear like two great “steps” of water, and the river here descends perhaps some thirty feet in all. The roar of the cataract can he heard miles off, and the backwater it creates is so powerful, that at the sides of the river the water persistently flows with a strong stream in the reverse direction to the central current. It needs some care to cross the river near the station lest the boat he drawn into the backwater, to be carried forcibly up into the cataracts, whirled round and dashed to pieces. To reach Stanley Pool therefore,* from Manyanga, you leave the Congo, and follow the native roads either to the north or south of the river. The southern route is by far the easier and safer to follow, as the hills are less steep, and the natives are pleasanter and kindlier people to deal with than the cantankerous Ba-bwende to the north. In either case the distance to be walked on foot is about one hundred miles. Some few miles behind Manyanga, one of the much-used native tracks passes from Stanley Pool to the upper waters of the Niari and its tributary the Ludima, and thence to the sea. This useful alternative route has been thoroughly mapped and surveyed by Mr. Stanley’s agents, who have founded a chain of stations along its course.CHAPTER VI. MANYANGA TO LEOPOLDVILLE (STANLEY POOL)* Road to Lutete—The Chief Lutete—Ravines on the. Road to Stanley Pool—the Edwin Aenold Rivee—A sudden Stoem—Kindness of the Zanzibaeis—An Oegie of Pine- apples—Trapping Bats—A Eetish-House—Ceossing the Inkissi — A Leopard’s Footprints— Caeved Logs—The Wa-mbuno — Ngoma — Leopoldville — The Missions — The Food Question—The Future of Leopoldville.CHAPTER VI. MAN YANG A TO LEOPOLDVILLE (STANLEY POOL). As usually happens this country— whenever you have got every thing ready for a start — the morning I was preparing to Manyanga for the Upper river with a hastily formed caravan of Zanzibaris, the rain came pelting A WILD PINEAPPLE.142 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. down, and kept us waiting vainly for its cessation. At last, towards evening, just to make a start, I availed myself of the kind offer made by the Baptist missionary then in residence at the little Mission below the hill, and packed the men, the goods and myself in the large and roomy Mission boat, while the mission- ary himself steered us over the difficult passage. I camped out that night opposite Manyanga, intending to start by the early dawn along the southern road to Stanley Pool, via Lutete. The weather was mise- rably wet, and the ground on which the tent was pitched became a sort of morass, into which the iron legs of my bed gradually sank under my weight, so that I found myself and my bedclothes nearly . level with the muddy grass. However, I arose the next morning with nothing worse than a severe sore throat, which the continuous exercise of the long day’s walk quickly dissipated. The general scenery on the road to Lutete is interesting in character, and offers many beautiful landscapes, which, however, are all of tire same type and grow somewhat monotonous in feature. A great stretch of valley, filled with rich forest, with a sounding stream that is seen flashing through the trees, is bounded by boldly-shaped hills, between each of which lesser valleys lie, that seem, as it were, tributaries of the great one, some of them mere crevasses in the mountains, but each with its tiny stream, its cascades, and its velvety woods. Occa- sionally, especially near Lutete, patches are clearedSCENERY NEAR LTJTETE.MANYANGA TO LEOPOLDVILLE (STANLEY POOL). 145 in the valleys, and the rich soil which the rain is always washing down from the hills is planted with manioc, tobacco, ground-nuts, and bananas. This gives, at times, a strangely civilized look to the country, and suggests the idea that in the future, when colonists flock to occupy the Congo territories, these lowlands will become true golden valleys, bringing forth all the products of the tropics; while their hill-sides, terraced and planted with vines, will be surmounted by many a fine-built habitation, from which the Neo-African may complacently look down on his rice-fields and his gardens, or his plantations and his sugar-brakes, which lie basking under an equatorial sun, irrigated by a never-failing stream. And what a future studying-ground for scientific men ! When people have conquered their unreason- able fear of the Congo climate, and some medical man has deigned to study the local hygiene, and so instruct us as to what we should eat and drink, and how we should live that we may best become accli- matised—when transport is facilitated and communi- cation with the outer world easy and assured, then let the scientist come and found his botanical garden in one valley, and his vivarium in another, whilst in his comfortable brick-built house, built of the bricks that are locally made, and exposed to the dry and healthy breezes that assail the hill-tops, he may prepare his specimens, and arrange his accumulated facts as much at his ease as if he were in Kew or the British Museum. The rounded hills that encircle these luxuriant L146 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. valleys are covered with strong coarse grasses of several sorts, of which the flower stalks often attain the height of fifteen feet, and with gnarled and stunted trees, bearing leaden-coloured, almost un- eatable fruit. I should omit the qualifying “ almost,” were it not that I have seen the Zanzibaris occasion- ally gnawing them. These trees are spread in a sparse manner over the hill-side, and give it from a distance a spotted appearance. This difference in richness of vegetation that exists between hills and valleys in this part of Africa is not due so much to the relative abundance of moisture as to the pre- vailing grass fires in the dry season. These sweep over the hills at times, destroying all the finer trees, so that only these stunted shrubs and the rank grass spring up from their roots anew and flourish for a season. Therefore it is that around the villages whose plantations are protected from the ravages of the flames, as far as may be possible, rich forest in- variably exists, and their presence may be infallibly detected in this country by the groups of fine trees and patches of purple forest growing isolated on the many hill-tops. Again, in all shut-in valleys and river-courses, where the fires are choked, there vegetation of the most wonderful character riots in all the wild luxuriance of its unchecked growth. I have already alluded to this subject in my descrip- tion of the villages u,t Yellala, and shall make some further remarks in treating of the forest region beyond Stanley Pool.MANY Am A TO LEOPOLDVILLE (STANLEY , POOL.) 147 Lutete is a pleasant little station, situated about eight miles from the Congo, on a high plateau, and commanding the great ivory route which runs from Stanley Pool to Sao Salvador and-Ambrizete. This important native road gradually diverges from the Congo to the south-west. Already at Lutete it is over eight miles in a direct line from the river bank. The bit of connecting road between Lutete and the landing-place opposite Manyanga, has been wholly or partially constructed by Mr. Stanley’s assistants. That, and the short bit of road between Yivi and Isangila, round the Ngoma falls, are all the engineering his expedition has at present under- taken, although with time and men Mr. Stanley hopes to construct a carriageable road from Vivi to Stanley Pool, to be perhaps followed by a railway. Lutete station takes its name from a powerful young chief in the neighbourhood, who has built a large village, and named it, as is the custom, after himself. His town contains finer-built houses than any native settlement for miles round, and Lutete himself is a most enterprising young fellow, often accompanying his caravans of ivory down to Ambrizete, on the coast, whence he returns with all sorts of trophies of civilization, such as coloured plates from the ‘ Graphic ’ and bottles of soda- water. The latter, he is half frightened of, and calls them “ devil water; ” but he generally makes a present of them to the chief of the station, who, of course, handsomely acknowledges the gift l 2148 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. with more than its equivalent in cloth. The coloured pictures from our wide-spread illustrated papers are proudly stuck up in the chief’s own house. Whenever Lutete wishes to impress some uncouth savage chief from the interior, he takes him into his palisaded hut and shows him Cinderella with her broom, or c Gfoody Two Shoes,’ telling him, of course, bombastically, that they are special presents from “ Mputo ”* (beyond the sea), and the wondering savage goes away much impressed by the power and influence of Lutete. Shortly after my arrival Lute'te, who was ill, sent his head wife to call upon me instead, and she brought me a large jar of palm wine as a present. This lady was extremely plain, but she was Lutete’s favourite wife because she has borne him many children. Having passed one day at this station to rest, I again started with my caravan of thirty men to journey on towards Stanley Pool. The country we * “Mputo” literally means, “agitated water,” and is in that sense primarily applied to the rapids of the Congo,-where they seethe and foam. Then further it is used to describe the sea with its troubled billows, and in a still wider sense means all that comes from the sea. The natives of the Lower Congo believe, or used to believe, that all white men came up out of the sea, and that our clothes were made of the skins of sea animals. Conse- quently, “ Muene Mputo ” means “ chief of the sea ” viz., chief of all the white men, and not, as the Portuguese would have us believe, “ the King of ‘ Puto ’ or Portugal.” If the natives wished to say “Portugal” they would call it “Poltogale,” not “ Mputo.” Further up the Congo, beyond the Pool, the natives, knowing little or nothing of the sea, call us “ Sons of the Sky,” or “ Sons of Heaven.”MANYANGA TO LEOPOLDVILLE (STANLEY POOL). 149 passed through, immediately before and after leaving Lutete, was of rather a peculiar appearance. Here and there were deep gullies, ravines, gulches, can- yons—I know not what to call them—huge clefts in the land, either made or modified by water eating into the soft red soil. They are similar to the same strange valleys and ravines round about Loanda, in Portuguese Africa. Their depths, however, here are filled with the richest, most fantastic forms of vege- tation, and to judge from the cries and noises that ascend out of the gulf of green, these glorious forests are peopled with many birds and monkeys. Any one of these ravines would be a rare hunting ground for the naturalist. Some distance after leaving Lutete, on attaining a high plateau which is traversed by the native path, a grand view may be obtained of the Edwin Arnold River, as it comes leaping in tremendous cascades into the Congo. The waters of this tu- multuous stream look exactly like a white cloth laid at intervals over the purple-wooded hills, for the distance at which you are standing does not permit you to see the motion of its stream, and the sheet of white spray is apparently as still and picture-like as if photographed. The second night of my journey a disaster occurred to me, but one of such a common type in African travel that I venture to retail it to you here, so that you may take the good with the ill, and not imagine a Congo traveller’s experience all sunshine and150 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. brightness. We were camped in a village as usnal, and my tent was to all appearance carefully and correctly pegged out. I had eaten a well-cooked little dinner with keen appetite, and then had enjoyed the unwonted luxury of a novel over a cup of coffee. When at length I grew tired of reading, I got into bed, leaving my book open, and most of the things lying unpacked and in disorder. I reckoned that there would be plenty of time to pack up in the morning. As I lay on my comfortable bed, soothed by a delicious sense of repose, I heard the rain beginning to pat down on my tent in great drops, while the rising wind soughed mournfully through the neighbouring trees ; but this dismal state of the weather out- side only accentuated the sense of comfort and security within the snug tent, and I was quietly falling asleep in a self-satisfied mood, when suddenly the wind rose like an angry devil, and puff! my tent was whipped up over my head, and laid flat on the ground a few yards off. In a second all was changed, and I was being brusquely awakened from my reverie, and half-drowned by the drenching rain, which was mercilessly streaming down on all my treasures. My. bed-clothes were soaked, my novel—I remember it was Alphonse Daudet’s ‘Les Rois en exil ’—was reduced in no time to yellow pap, every- thing was going to ruin and dissolution—the rain even beat the ground up into thick mud which engulfed most of the smaller articles; and all thisMANYANGA TO LEOPOLDVILLE (STANLEY POOL). 151 time I was too paralysed by the sudden shock and the cold douche of rain to call for help. At last, however, I found my breath, and applied it lustily to a small whistle round my neck. In a minute the Zanzibaris had rushed from an adjoining cottage, and seizing me up in their arms, carried me swiftly into shelter. Here by the side of a blazing fire, I dried myself and my bed-clothes, and slept soundly on a native bed of matting. It was really wonderful the number of things that were saved from the wrecked tent and dried by the fire, and my losses were limited to the novel afore described, and some trifling odds and ends too mixed up with the mud to be detected. However, in future I always endeavoured when passing the night in a native village to borrow a house to sleep in. It is much more comfortable than sleeping in a tent, as you have greater space and freer ventilation, a tent always being abominably hot and close, whereas the chinks between the matting in the sides of the house allow of a thorough circulation of air. Then, too, the roof is rain-tight, and cannot, except in very rare circumstances, be blown away by the wind, and you have a perfectly dry and hardened floor. I more than ever appreciated after this catastrophe the admirable qualities of the Zanzibaris, who are never at a loss, and who are the most truly unselfish servants perhaps in the world. It quite touched me- to see, when I staggered into the hut where they were sleeping, how one man gave up his bed,152 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER OONQO. another his mosquito-curtains, and a third his blankets, in order that the “ Little Master ” might not catch cold while his things were being dried, and this not only from my own men, between whom and myself a real attachment subsisted, hut from Zanzibaris I had only seen and known for three days. The Arab mixture in the Zanzibari men has not only given them finer features and more refined manners, but it has also implanted in them an unselfishness which can never be found in the true negro. The succeeding day, a bright sun dried up the remaining dampness in the ground and atmosphere, and we trudged along merrily through beautiful scenery. We are here following the great trade route from Stanley Pool to the coast, and the sides of the way are strewn with the top leaves of pine-apples, which, when the fruit is eaten, are thrown away, and, taking root in the rich red soil at the side of the path, serve to spread this plant along the whole route between Lutete and Stanley Pool, in some places, especially in the dank, moist ravines, forming an almost impenetrable hedge on each side of the narrow path. The inhabitants come to these narrow valleys, and fill their long wicker-baskets with the beautiful golden fruit which forms now so large a part of their diet. In one village we came to, there was a perfect orgie of pine-apples going on. The people were too indolent and careless even to sell them, and one lady, with whom, fromMANYANQA TO LEOPOLDVILLE (STANLEY POOL). lfS pure habit, I was disputing' the price of her basket- ful, said in a languid way to Faraji, “ Here, take them; as he does not want to pay he can have them for nothing.” The dog;s, the cats, the pigs, the goats, the fowls, and the children, all lived on pine-apples. The very people had a golden tinge about them, as if from the absorption of such quantities of mellow fruit, and the fowls I bought here had a flavour that was quite inexplicable save for this theory of an exclusive pine-apple diet. Here it was quite impos- sible to resist halting; we arrived at about eight in the morning, and for two whole hours we sat and ate pine-apples. A few brass rods paid for the entire feast, and the generous natives, moreover, brought us a heaped-up basketful to carry on our journey. However burdened the men might be, this was an extra load they never refused. Everywhere along the road here, are what seem to be rude imitations of telegraph posts, tall straight poles, with lines of fine string stretched from pole to pole ; but from these strings descend numbers of loops or nooses, with a slip-knot. These I took to be for catching birds, as you sometimes see in English orchards similar traps for catching fieldfares and other fruit-eaters ; but on inquiry I found they were set for bats, which fly against them in the dusk and are thus frequently caught to be eaten by the natives. Whether a bat is good for food I certainly doubt, the insect-eating ones would not seem to be so, and those that only subsist on fruit have an154 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. offensive smell of musk. But the people here seem to appreciate them. About this region the bracken fern, apparently of three or four varieties, becomes very abundant, absolutely covering large tracts of land. Where the region is at all marshy, along the banks of streams, this is rivalled by beautiful lycopodiums of most exquisite fern-like shape, and sometimes with a bluish tinge about their fronds. Curiously enough, the natives, who have very fair elementary notions about natural classification, do not recognise the bracken as a fern, but on the other hand, include the lycopods in that order, to which, in their language, they give a generic name, “ Man- selele ” (plur. of Nselele). In the midst of the forest we came across a little fetish house. It was built of a framework of laths and the roof was thatched. On the projecting stakes of the roof plates and dishes of European manufac- ture were “ spiked,” that is, by some ingenious means a hole had been roughly pierced through their centres, and they were hung on the end of the sticks protruding from the thatch of the roof. Inside the hut was a circular mound of worked clay, on which many different patterns and designs had been traced by means of various coloured pebbles, white stones and even beads. On each.side of this mound stood two statues about four feet high, representing sepa- rately, in the frankest manner possible, the male and female principle. The sex of either figure was so much en evidence, that according to our views theyMANYANGA TO LEOPOLDVILLE (STANLEY POOL). 155 would be decidedly obscene, though there was noth- ing intentionally indecent about them, and they merely represented to the native’s mind in a crude manner the, to him, mysterious power of generation or creation. The great resemblance these figures bore to native men and women, and the clever manner in which they were carved and painted, testified to the wonderful artistic faculties of this so- called savage people. At the feet of these statues were mugs, plates, and specimens of native crockery. All these articles were slightly broken, either to disable them for future use, and thus prevent tempta- tion to rob the sanctuary, or, as seems more probable, with an idea that a broken plate or vessel “ dies, ” and so goes appropriately to the land of the spirits.* About noon on the third day of our journeying we came to the banks of the Inkissi, and had to cross that swift, rolling, turbid stream in native canoes. The natives always land much lower down the river than where they embark, for the current is so swift that it is impossible to entirely withstand its influence. It is here about as broad as the Thames at Windsor, and probably rises in the mountains eastward of Sao Salvador. For navigation it is quite useless, owing to its furious current and many falls ; on the further side of the Inkissi, the woods are beautiful, and the path winds through enchanting scenery, over little brooks where green mossy rocks stem the impatient, foaming little streams, and under the grandly over- arching trees, festooned with mazy creepers and * See chap. xvi.156 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. beneath whose shade the humid soil is covered with a carpet of ferns. On the little sandy shore of one brooklet, where the restrained water, quitting its barrier of velvety-green stones, whose severity is tempered by the tenderest covering of moss, spreads itself out with pride to twice its previous width, on the crisp white sand were deeply imprinted the foot- marks of a leopard. Perhaps but a few minutes before he had come there to slake his thirst; he had stolen from his lair amid the dense brushwood to this quiet bay of the brook, where he stood in soft grey-green shade lapping the stream near where it fell in white streaks over the moss-carpeted stones. Long sprays , of maidenhair tickled his forehead, great knotted lianas bumped against him as the slight breeze swayed these vegetable ropes backwards and for- wards.. Little poeocephalus parrots mocked at him, and yellow-vented fly-catchers shrieked out his crimes ; still he laps' on with greedy thirst, soothed by the soft-whispering shade of trees and ferns in which he stands, with a background of intensely vivid sunlit verdure, where the forest breaks open to the sky. But the distant sound of men’s voices has disturbed him, and as they push their noisy way along the woodland path, crunching the dead twigs under foot and swishing back the pendent boughs, he softly slinks away into the untracked solitudes of dead sombre green, and leaves but the trace of his footsteps on the sandy shore of the little brook to attest his recent presence. Again the forest lies behind us, and we toil upMAN YANG A TO' LEOPOLDVILLE (STANLEY POOL). 157 the hill path as the sun is sinking, and enter a fine large village, some five hours’ march beyond the Inkissi river. Here you get a good idea of Central African life. There is a general aspect of tidy prosperity, and the people are unusually sportive and merry amongst themselves. I even witnessed what is rarely seen amongst these races—amorous toying and loving caresses between a fine stalwart husband and his plump little wife. Children, pretty little children, were playing together and making dirt-pies, one child looking on, and carrying a baby as big as itself. One infant had the whooping cough, and another was playing with a beautifully made rattle. A hen and chickens, with that steadfast obstinacy that is so characteristic of fowls, would insist on retiring for the night in the house which had been assigned me as my lodging; so two capable little hoys caught the ten chickens tenderly and conveyed them to a place of safety, the old hen naturally clucking and protesting behind. An immense quantity of pumpkins, with the ripe fruit and the great yellow blossom growing on the same plant, and the waving fields of manioc which I saw in the bright morning light, lent an air of prosperity and plenty to the tidy groups of houses. In this village, in front of many of the habitations, lay huge logs of wood, roughly trimmed tree-trunks. At one end they exhibited but little handling from the operator, but at the other they terminated in a rudely carved and painted head, executed with little finish indeed,158 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. yet the few strokes that wrought the semblance to humanity had been given with a certain decision and skill. There was, in fact, a good deal of character and expression in this sketch ed-out face, which, besides, bore much resemblance to the pre- vailing type of man in that neighbourhood. Whether these logs, of which many were lying prone before the cottage doors, were “ house-idols ” in disgrace, or merely ornamental settles, I could not ascertain; but when I mentioned the word for “ idol ” and pointed towards them, the men and women gathered round and laughed contemptuously. I might mention that the natives here call them- selves “ Wa-mbuno.” The plural prefix “ wa ” again replaces the more classical “ ba.” Beyond this village all was magnificent, grandoise forest. The path goes down, down, down into its depths, and the tree-tops shut out the sky. The long straight lianas, like plumb-lines and scaffolding de- pending from the branches, sketch out a sort of fantastic architecture. Large white jasmine flowers shine out like stars in the gloomy depths of foliage, and down at the bottom of the deep ravine a brown stream catches a few glints of green light as it hurries along. On the evening of the fourth day, after leaving Lutete, we stopped at the village of Ngoma.* Hero an old fetish-man and some young disciples were * Ngoma means “drum” It is a word often applied to a sounding fall of water.MANYANGA TO LEOPOLDVILLE {STANLEY POOL). 159 performing a sort of dance, in which they hopped about like frogs, squatted on their heels, and waved their hands downwards from the heavens. I was told they were calling down the rain—surely a most superfluous appeal to the clerk of the weather, who took care to souse us every day. Other of the inhabitants, more indolent, or conscious of the inutility of supplicating Providence, were reclining in different postures in lazy ease, having their hair dressed by women. Prom ISTgoma it was a trying march of fifteen miles to Leopoldville, and as I was suffering badly from an ulcer on the ancle, the road seemed doubly long; and when at length I limped into the station, I was in need of the kind reception accorded me. A late breakfast was soon got ready, and they gave me a splendid cucumber grown in the station garden. You do not get a glimpse of Stanley Pool until you are quite close to Leopoldville, and it is then, on turning round the hill-side, that the magnificent prospect of it bursts upon your view. Leopoldville, like most of Mr. Stanley’s stations, is placed on rising ground, hut it does not occupy for its site the exact summit of the hill, being built on what may he called a semicircular ledge round the slope which faces the expanding Pool. The principal edifice of the station is a large two- storied house made of wood, bricks, and a sort of mud plaster. The roof is of thatch, for the sake of160 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. coolness, and all the framework of the house is composed of huge beams of wood, apparently of great strength, hut really a source of weakness, as the wood is being constantly eaten through by the white ants and other insect pests, so that frequently a beam gives way, and is renewed only just in time to save the structure. This house contains a large dining-room, a store, and three bed-rooms on the ground-floor ; and on the first story a long, low- pitched chamber, which is generally Mr. Stanley’s private sitting-room when he comes to Leopoldville. In his absence, it is occupied by the chief of the station. Behind the house, and apart from it are the kitchens and domestic offices, and in front spreads a fine open porch, as I may call it, for want of a better word, which is really a large open apartment, in addition to the dining-room, project- ing on to the esplanade, and forming a delightfully airy spot in which to sit during the day-time. In a row with this big house are two other buildings. One has a series of apartments for the white men, and the other a large supplementary store. Both above and below these European dwellings are many little houses for the Zanzibaris, and the natives attached to the station. Beneath the es- planade, which runs along the front of the “white” part of Leopoldville, and leading down towards the port, the Zanzibaris’ houses make quite a neat and orderly looking town, each cottage having its garden and enclosure round it. The esplanade, which IMANYANGA TO LEOPOLDVILLE (STANLEY POOL). 161 have already mentioned, is really a flat terrace cut artificially in the slope of the hill, and is in con- tinuation with the road arising from the interior. From this promenade views of great beauty may be obtained over the distant Pool and the neigh- bouring forest, and in the cool evening-time it forms a pleasant walk to stroll on whilst waiting for dinner. Here, too, in the early morning, the chief of the station passes all the Zanzibaris in review. A quarter of a mile away, on the top of the hill, is the little Baptist Mission, which enjoys, perhaps, the finest situation of any building in Leopoldville, the view from its verandah embracing almost the whole extent of Stanley Pool. The Baptist mission- aries have, besides, a large garden down near the banks of the Congo, and they rent altogether from the Expedition about two-and-a-half acres of land, paying for it the merely nominal sum of £10 per annum. In the wooded valley below Leopoldville the Livingstone Inland Mission is just commencing building operations,* Dr. Sims and a Danish mission- ary having been recently established there as tenants of the Expedition. Above, below, and around the station are exten- sive gardens, banana groves, and plantations of manioc. They already begin to furnish no incon- siderable amount of food both to the black and the white inhabitants of Leopoldville, and of course in * Their houses are, I believe, now finished (December, 1883). M162 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. future, together with the stock-breeding establish- ments for goats, fowls, sheep, pigs, ducks, and pigeons, onght to completely nourish the station and its normal number of residents, so that only what may be termed “ luxuries ” need he introduced from Europe. There is no reason why many even of these should not be produced and prepared on the spot. The sugar-cane, for instance, is largely grown by the natives, and its pulp may in the simplest, most elementary way be boiled and strained down into a thick toffy-like sugar, quite suitable for all ordinary sweetening purposes without further refinement. Then, as we know, coffee is indigenous to most parts of tropical Africa, and if it does not actually grow wild on the Congo, it would certainly yield on these fertile slopes around the Pool, the finest results under cultivation. It is the food question that is the real difficulty of Congo exploration. Though the soil is richly pro- ductive, the natives grow only just enough to live upon in plenty themselves, but are not equal to a sudden drain on their resources. Mr. Stanley has long since understood the necessity of making his Expedition self-supporting, both from the expense and difficulty of importing preserved provisions from Europe, and from the inability of the natives to adequately supply anything like the amount of food which is daily needed for the nourishment of each station. Consequently, almost before he built houses, he laid out gardens, he planted bananas, and com-MANYANGA TO LEOPOLDVILLE (STANLEY POOL). 163 menced the cultivation of manioc, and whenever he made an inspection of a newly-founded station or revisited an old one, his first care was the local husbandry. Leopoldville boasts of a convenient little harbour in front of the station, protected by a spit of wood- THE PORT OF LEOPOLDVILLE. land which projects into the Congo. Here all the falls are over, or, rather, following the course of the stream, have not yet begun—the first takes place close to Leopoldville, a little behind the station—- so that navigation from this port is open and un- checked for nearly a thousand miles eastward up the164 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. Congo. In fact Leopoldville, situated at the western entrance to Stanley Pool, is destined to be the great Empire city -of Central Africa. From its shores there are, according to Stanley’s calculations, 4,520 miles of free navigation north, and south, and east, into the heart of Africa. It will one day he the terminus of a railway from the coast and the starting pioint of a river journey half across Africa. The ivory, copper and iron; the spices, the wax and the gums of the interior will meet in its marts the costumes of London and Paris and products of the manufactories of the old world. Or, in another sense, the raw material which is poured into Leopoldville from the interior will return to it from the exterior in other forms. Its sugar will come hack in the daintier shape of Parisian bonbons, its india-rubber will he reimported as highly necessary goloshes and waterproofs. Congo spices will be mingled in the sought-for and quaintly-named sauces of America, and over the counters of its toilet shops the merchant enriched in the ivory trade will pur- chase ivory-handled brushes which are made in England from the tusks that his firm has exported. Who knows, even, that the only note-paper in use amongst the fashionable world of Leopoldville may not some day be manufactured from the very papy- rus which so thickly grows around the woody islands and the reedy shores of Stanley Pool ?CHAPTER VII. STANLEY POOL. Scenery of the Pool—Dover Cliffs—Brazzaville—Kallina Point—Death of Lieutenant Kallina—The Chiefs round Stanley Pool—Ngaliema—Boat Voyage to Bolobo—A Kin- shasha Village — A Conversazione — Hyphjsne Palms— Smoked Fish—An African Rain-storm—Importance of Diet—Hippopotami—G-rey Parrots—Kimpoko—A climbing Palm.lands of some the Calamus palm in different stages; with fruit.168 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. note, the largest of them being thirteen miles in lengtn. Many sand-banks strew the waters of the Pool, alternately covered and uncovered, according to the season of the year, and there are also floating reed and papyrus islands, formed of these masses of aquatic vegetation, which are so strongly interknitted by their fibres and roots that a man can stand on them. These floating islets are occa- sionally of some extent, and may be taken for real FLOATING REED ISLAND ON STANLEY POOL. islands until their motion with the current is observed. White egrets and many waterbirds frequent them, and the hippopotami play round their reedy shores. The large islands* are resorted to by elephants and buffaloes, which creatures swim backwards and * These vary in size and number according to the season. In the rainy months they are subdivided into two or three each, with shallow channels between. In the dry season the number of islands is much diminished by the retreating waters.STANLEY FOOL. 169 forwards from the mainland with ease. Innumerable waterbirds, storks, pelicans, cormorants, herons, egrets, sacred ibises, spur-winged and Egyptian geese, terns and plovers, frequent the thick tangles of high grass and the many sand-banks, where they form strange groups with the crocodiles, who are wont to lie basking in the sun in a state of semi- conscious beatitude. The Pool forms, as it were, a great cup-like basin, with an incomplete rim formed by sierras of peaked and picturesque mountains, ranging on the southern side from 1,000 feet to3,000 feet in height. The banks of this great expanse of water offer considerable variety in character. At the northern, or north-eastern end, where the Upper Congo enters it through a some- what narrow passage, the scenery is very beautiful. High woods rise so steeply above the water that,, as you sail beneath their shade, they seem to mount indefinitely towards the sky. It is a wall of forest. Then, almost opposite, following the northern bank, are the “ Dover Cliffs,”* their scarped sides white and glistening, and their crowns being covered with soft green grass. They more resemble, however, the scenery round Lyme Regis, in Dorset and Devon, than the harsher and more rugged cliffs of Dover. Then on both sides of the Pool, the shores dwindle down into flat forest land, the encircling girdle of mountains trending off towards the * Their geological formation is a white, sandy, somewhat crumbling soil, not chalk.170 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. interior, and when you reach Mfwa or “ Brazza- ville,” the coast is low and nearly on a level with the water. It is here that De Brazza claims to have .sectored a cession of territory to the French Republic, nine miles in length. As you may see by the illustration, u Brazzaville ” consists of a very few native huts, half buried in bananas, and backed by thick forest. On the left hand side, facing the Pool, there is a small creek, which might he developed into a tiny harbour, and there is a fine and fertile island, as yet uninhabited, save by chance fishermen, which might be successfully developed by the French; but save these two advantages, not rare anywhere in Stanley Pool, it is difficult to discover any favourable point in this situation, or even to avoid the conclusion that it is a badly chosen site for a station. About this low-lying part of the Pool, ague is prevalent, and in the rainy season I should say Mfwa would become a rheumatic swamp. Had De Brazza fixed his intended stationSTANLEY POOL. 171 anywhere on the high and breezy “ Dover Cliffs,” he would have done well, and, remember, the whole basin of the Pool was open to him when he first arrived, for he reached it long before Mr. Stanley had been able to transport his goods and his men thither to found a station, so that the Franco-Italian, as it were, had the first choice of a site. I can only suppose that, in spite of the affection the natives bore him, they did not place much ground at his disposal, and that De Brazza fixed on Mfwa because he could not get anything better. He may also have looked across at Kallina Point, and hoped to secure that some day, and then be able to shut up the mouth of the Pool if necessary. This promon- tory is a red cliff, rising abruptly some fifty feet from the water, nearly opposite Mfwa, on the southern bank of the expanding river. Kallina Point might from its commanding situation be called the Gibraltar of the Pool, as from its easily fortified summit artillery could sweep the narrowing end of this lake and render the further descent of its waters by an enemy well-nigh impossible. Of course in conjunction with “ Brazzaville,” its possession by a hostile party could completely interrupt water com- munication between Leopoldville and the upper river. A fearful current races round this cliff, difficult to stem even in a steamer, but really dangerous for native canoes going against the stream. Here, in December, 1882, Lieut. Kallina, an Austrian member172 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. of the Expedition, was drowned. He would insist on ascending the Congo in a small native canoe, being too impatient to explore the mysteries of the un- known to wait for the departure of the monthly boat which revictuals the stations of the upper river. As he was a very tall man, and for some reason chose to seat himself on a large chest in the stern, he rendered the balance of the canoe very unstable. The little craft was hadly steered, met the rush of the current broadside as it whirled round this point, and was instantly capsized. Lieutenant Kallina was drowned, and his name has since been given to this redoubtable headland, which, I may mention, up to the present time still remains in the possession of its original holders, the chiefs of Kinshasha, who as yet have not decided to cede their claims either to Stanley or De Brazza.* The people inhabiting the shores of Stanley Pool belong to the Ba-teke race, but they would seem to he comparatively recent arrivals, and to have dis- possessed the older inhabitants and driven them into the interior or absorbed them as slaves. Where the Ba-teke have settled, on the south or eastern bank of the Congo, they form merely riverine colonies, and never extend their settlements many miles from its banks. The principal chiefs round the Pool are Bab Njali, De Brazza’s landlord, who rules over Mfwa and the * Since writing this I have just heard from Mr, Stanley that he has been permitted to build a station here.STANLEY POOL. 173 lower course of the impetuous Gordon Bennett or Jue river; Ngaliema, the chief of Ntamo and the territory round Leopoldville ; three more important chiefs at or near Kinshasha, of whom one, Bankwa, is very averse to Europeans ; and finally there is a great chief, fortunately of another way of thinking, at Kimpoko, where the Expedition possesses a flourishing station. Ngaliema is the chief with whom Mr. Stanley has come most into contact, for Leopoldville is built on land bought from him, and he is the nearest, and not the most agreeable neigh- bour of the station. At first he tried to act the bully, until he saw how inadequate his strength of one hundred and fifty guns would prove in any attack on Leopoldville. Now he is by turns a whining suppliant, a sulky neighbour or a crafty intriguer. He is a man of rather strong character and decided will, having raised himself from the position of a mere slave to that of a powerful chief of slaves. This town of Ntamo or Kintamo (the prefix Ki rather implies “ district”), was founded and colonised by him, and he has since enriched himself immensely by ivory trading. Nearly all the ivory brought down by the Ba-yansi traders from the Equator (whence they receive it from the Ba-ngala, who in their turn get it from some still more remote tribe) comes to his market, and passes through his hands to Lutete and Sao Salvador. I left Leopoldville, towards the end of February,* * The -height of the rainy season.174 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. in a large lighter or whale-boat, rowed by a sturdy crew of Zanzibaris, to ascend the Congo as far as Bolobo, a large native village about 220 miles beyond Stanley Pool, where the last station of the Expedition had recently been founded. Our departure, as usual, was signalised by a down- pour of rain that was almost exceptional in its force and duration, and which quickly showed me how ill-prepared we were for the exigencies of a tropical rainy season. In a large open boat, with absolutely no shelter but a hastily-slung sail which merely received pools of rainwater in its bosom to launch them on our heads when the violent wind gave it a twist; with no place of dry stowage for the luggage which just lay about in the bottom of the boat, or if floatable, floated here and there in the rain-water that in spite of the men’s efforts of constant baling lay often 6 inches deep in the middle of the lighter; circumstanced thus we had no course when it rained but to stop rowing, run the boat aground, and seek for some temporary refuge where- in we and such of the cargo as was likely to spoil by constant soaking could await in shelter the return of fine weather. In this instance, we had scarcely rounded Kallina Point wdien the torrential rain forced us to make for the southern shore of the Pool, where the villages of Kinshasha were situated. The Zanzibaris, knowing well the indications of the weather, and foreseeing an entire day of rain, wished me to descend here, and seek refuge in a native hut,STANLEY POOL. 175 but miserable as I felt, with the rain streaming down my mackintosh and my feet an inch deep in water, I hesitated, for here, only a few days before, the chief of Leopoldville, come on a friendly mission and camped out in the village, had been obliged to leave in the middle of the night, turned out by hostile natives who regarded the arrival of any white man in their district with irritable suspicion. Would they greet me any better, much less afford me a refuge from the rain ? I asked myself, and supposing they not only refused us hospitality but even ventured to rob and attack us, should we be in a position to resist ? However, my scruples soon ended. The prospect of quietly soaking all day and getting rheumatic fever, or else returning humiliated to Leopoldville, was more disagreeable than adventur- ing myself amongst the capricious natives, who perhaps themselves might be depressed and softened by the weather. So I left the boat, took a few necessary articles of luggage, and walked up through the long wet grass to the village, where to my pleased surprise the natives received us most hospitably, and at once invited me into an inhabited hut where I could remain and dry myself until an unoccupied dwelling could be found and placed at my disposal. The other inmates of the house, ex- cepting the many and constant visitors, were a middle-aged man, with his hair en chignon, his wife, suckling a baby, whose forehead was orna- mented with a band of scarlet pigment, and an old176 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. man, who might have been a poor broken-down uncle of the family. After the drenching rain and sodden dampness outside, the dry warmth of this interior was a most pleasant contrast, and I sat down on a large raised bed of matting with a sense of comfort and resig- nation. There was a wood fire in the centre of the floor which served to dry my clothes, hut the smoke coming from the burning wood made my eyes smart considerably.. Seeing this, the woman removed the burning brands and only left the clear bright ashes on the hearth. The house was clean and tidy, and round the walls were ranged many neatly-made articles. There were long pipes with little howls, a clarionet, a white mug (these last presents from “ Mputo ”), a musical instrument like a guitar, but with five strings, a collection of skilfully made little pouches containing I know not what, hippopotamus harpoons, fishing nets, horns, and a multitude of odds and ends, only to he classed under that con- venient term etcetera. I opened my case of provisions, laid the cloth on the bed, and sat down with considerable appetite to a frugal repast. The sight of the tinned condiments excited a considerable amount of half-fearsome interest on the part of such natives as watched my proceedings. They tapped their mouths with their fingers—a favourite mode of expressing surprise—when they saw Faraji cut with a “ tin- opener ” into what they imagined a solid block ofSTANLEY POOL. 177 steel, and produce little fish (sardines) floating in oil. But when I offered them some to taste they withdrew affrighted. It was “ Nkissi ” magic, white man’s food—poison, and some of them were so alarmed at my proffering part of my lunch that they hurriedly left the hut. But curiosity soon called them back, and visitors were continually flocking in. Many children, some of them pretty little things, had made friends with me, and were wonder-stricken at my ticking watch, which they fully believed to be a little animal imprisoned in a cage. Then to this paradise of rest and calm came the tempter, a wicked old gentleman with a wife and two marriageable daughters. He was most anxious I should become his son-in-law, “ moyennant ” several “ longs ” of cloth. Seeing my hesitation, he mistook it for scorn, and hastened to point out the manifold charms of his girls, whilst these damsels waxed hotly indignant at my cold- ness. Then another inspiration seized their father —perhaps I liked a maturer style of beauty, and his wife, by no means an uncomely person, was dragged forward while her husband explained with the most expressive gestures, putting his outspread hand before his eyes and affecting to look another way, that, again with the simple intermediary of a little cloth, he would remain perfectly unconscious of whatever amatory passages might occur between us. However I evaded these embarrassing proposals as delicately as possible, and hinted with many smiles178 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. and “ Mbotes,” that were I otherwise circumstanced an alliance with one of the first families of Kinshasha might have been within my means. As it was, the honour seemed too costly. However we parted excellent friends, and the elder lady, with the practical-mindedness of mature affection, presented me with a fine large fish, which came in very handily for my dinner, whilst her younger com- panions brought such girlish offerings as eggs, corn- cobs and bananas. I, in my turn, presented them with gaudy handkerchiefs, and general satisfaction reigned. Seeing that the hopeless downpour would never cease, I made arrangements for the loan of a house to pass the night in, and one was soon found—dry, clean, and spacious, in which I and my impedimenta were quickly established. It was then proposed—evidently by the village notables—that an evening conversazione should be held in my apartment, and the proposal was carried unanimously. Consequently, to my secret annoyance, an ever-increasing number of able-bodied people pressed into the little house, the men gravely seating themselves on the floor, each with his long pipe, quite prepared to spend a cheer- ful evening, and the women, as became their inferior position in society, standing about the doorway, and effectually blocking up all ventilation. A resolution was forthwith carried and presented to me by one who appeared to be the chairman, that my watch should be again exhibited to the ladies andSTANLEY POOL. 179 gentlemen assembled. Sorry as I was to disappoint these harmless souls, I felt an effort must be made to secure a little quiet and repose, especially as my dinner was nearly ready; so I managed to convey to them the idea * that the white man was tired, hungry, and wished to be alone. The men then rose most courteously and quietly, shook hands with me, each one in turn, and with many “ Mbotes ” left the house, pushing the protesting women before them, so I was practically once more in the solitude I loved. I took off my wet boots, made myself comfortable, and turned with pleasure to the dinner and the novel that Faraji had just placed on a large chest which served me as a table. The mosquitoes here, however, were very abundant, but trumpeted despairingly round my mosquito-curtain. As the village sank to rest, the weird noises from the river rose into prominence, with the grunting of hippo- potami and the cries of night-birds. The next morning I left my Kinshasha friends, and again pursued my journey across the wide waters of the Pool, which now began to open into all its magnificent breadth. On many islands the Hyphcene * palms were growing, apparently a different species from the Hyphcene Guineensis of the coast and the lower reaches of the Congo. This Hyphcene was a most beautiful and majestic palm, from thirty to sixty feet in height, with broad fan- shaped fronds of glaucous green, and clusters of * Hyphoene ventricosa (Kirk ) ? N 2180 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. bright orange fruit. Just below tbe crown of leaves there is a curious swelling or bulging of tbe stem, a not uncommon characteristic of Borrassine or Hyphcenoid palms, and which adds strangely to the grace of the pillar-like stem. The vegetation which clothes the shores of these islands is rich and pleasing in colour. It is brightened by masses of yellow cucurbit flowers, HYPHCENE PALMS. lilac-coloured papilionaceae and mauve convolvuli. Beautiful scarlet seed-vessels of a Cnestis form blazing clusters of gorgeous effect amid the tender green foliage. Immense numbers of grey parrots, small flocks of them going together, flutter and play about the tops of the tall trees, whistling and scream- ing joyously all the time, while on the many snaggs that rear their withered branches above the water-STANLEY POOL. 181 side, numerous little birds have for safety’s sake hung their pendent nests of grass, and there is thus a constant twittering and fluttering of dainty forms round the gnarled old trunks and whitened twigs. At one of the many islands, we stopped to eat some breakfast. The remainder of the fish presented to me by the lady of Kinshasha was re-cooked in a stew with some sweet potatoes and manioc and turned out delicious. Whilst this was being done by Mafta, I endeavoured to make the tour of the island, but as more than half of it was marsh, this was hardly practicable. Everywhere the soft soil was imprinted by the hoof-marks of the hippopotami who at present were occupied with their mid-day bath. Their loud grunting might be distinctly heard, and as we sat in the boat eating our breakfast, many an uncouth head was raised with a snort and a jet of spray to regard our proceedings. There was little of note to see in this particular island. The hippopotami and the circling kites had it pretty well to themselves. There were, however, some fine groves of the large and handsome papilionaceous tree, a species of Baphia, (which I have already mentioned and illustrated in Chapter Y.,) and the strong fragrant scent from their white blossoms made the whole island fragrant. In front of us, on a sand-bank, some natives were smoking their freshly- caught fish over a wood fire, preparatory to dispos- ing of them in the markets of the Ba-teke. In all182 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. probability these men were Ba-yansi, for this tribe does an immense trade in smoked fish between the Equator and Stanley Pool. As they descend the river with ivory and other articles of trade, they spend much time fishing on their way, and fre- quently stop at a sand-bank or island to smoke what they have captured. The fish thus treated last a long time in good condition, and are in some request amongst all the riverine natives as an article of food. I have sometimes found them excellent—I might almost say delicious—white of flesh and flaky, with few bones, and retaining from the smoking pro- cess a faint but very pleasant flavour. On the other hand, at times the natives have palmed off on me some that were evidently stale, for on breaking them open, they were a mass of wriggling worms within. Hitherto, throughout this morning, the day had been glorious, and all the time I sat at breakfast, watching the hippopotami and the fishermen, the sky was radiantly blue, blue as it only is during the rainy season in Africa, for in the rainless months the sky is mostly covered with a whitish haze ; but now, distant mutterings of thunder were heard from time to time, and threatening clouds began to shadow the broad face of the still Pool, which ere- while reflected nothing but unsullied azure. Then rose suddenly a fearful inky black mass, rendered more weird by two flecks of pallid white cloud thatSTANLEY POOL. 183 seemed the eyes of the storm-fiend. ' Vivid zigzags of pink lightning played over the still water, and the thunder rumbled and tumbled as if they were moving colossal furniture in heaven. Yet the storm did not immediately burst on us, but rather crept round and round the horizon, as if playing with its victims. At one time I had lost all fear of it, thinking it seemed quite resolved to gooff to the west; when,' suddenly, a puff of wind sprang up in the opposite direction to the prevailing breeze, and in two or three minutes the cruel clouds ■ were swept upon us, and a deluge of rain was hissing down. Useless to put up a sail shelter, the scornful wind whipped it off, and we could only sit patiently and soak. This is the dreary part of an African rain-storm. The first beginning of the tempest is most awe- striking and impressive. One is half inclined to think that some great natural catastrophe, some appalling conflict of physical forces is at hand. The purple-black clouds that rise in fantastic masses, which an imaginative eye could resolve into un- earthly beings overshadowing the earth and its frightened children; the dazzling snowy-white of their colossal heads rising up into the blue zenith and accentuating the inky darkness round the horizon; the jagged lightning, the first skirmishing attack of the storm, and the sudden bursts of roaring, deafening thunder—all this is grand and imposing, and fascinates the attention while it lasts. This is184 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. the “ stagey ” part of a tropical storm, and one which scarcely any book treating of the tropics fails to describe. But what does not seem to be equally noticed after the wonderful effects of thunder and lightning have had their due description, is the dreary persistent downpour which ensues, when the sky becomes a uniform drab and the rain descends for hours, not in “ bucketsful,” nor in “ sheets,” nor in any interesting or exceptional manner, hut in a steady soaking drizzle with little hope of inter- mission. I have frequently known it to rain for twelve hours at a stretch in Tropical Africa, and on this particular occasion the rain lasted continu- ously for an even longer space of time. We repaired to a sandy island, landed, and erected the tent. Never had I felt more miserable in Africa. It took an hour before the wet wood could be coaxed into a blaze; and as the gloom of evening fell, with its dark mists and dismal obscurity, bands of hellish mosquitoes, worthy subjects of Beelzebub, king of the flies, swarmed round us, rendering it impossible to keep oneself in immobility. The poor Zanzibaris went stamping about on the sand and swearing in a meek way. As for me, I hastily swallowed some soup and a timely nip of brandy, and sought refuge in bed beneath my mosquito-curtains. Here, amid damp rags and clammy coverings, I passed a miserable night, fighting the hosts of mosquitoes that managed somehow to penetrate my muslin “ moustiquaire.”STANLEY POOL. 185 The next morning I arose, feverish and ill. After a little hot soup, however, and some coffee, I began to feel better and to forget the dismal impressions of yesterday. And here I would pause to recommend to all intending African travellers the desirability of taking nourishment as soon after rising in the morning as possible. It is an excellent plan to save some of the soup or bouillon of the night before, and have it heated in the early morning, and drink it before leaving the tent. So much ill-health is incurred in Africa by carelessness as to nourishment, and by what is still more idiotic, an idea that it is more heroic to conduct yourself like a martyr, undergo long periods of fasting, and generally pay little attention to how much or how often you eat and drink. On the contrary, the whole question of success in Africa depends on regularly and amply nourishing the body with as good food as can be got. Let nothing, if you can help it, interfere with your meals: eat whenever you are hungry and abstain when you are not. Moreover, do not forget that in Africa a cosy cup of tea or coffee and a little light refreshment often comes in most opportunely and soothingly in moments of despondency and trouble, and that it “ keeps people up ” somewhat as our proverbial cake and wine is supposed to do before a funeral. As we left our sand-bank camp of the night before, the sun shone in but a half-hearted manner and more rain fell, but I was expecting momentarily to186 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONQO. arrive at the newly founded station of Kimpoko, near the north-western end of Stanley Pool, where, at least, we should find rest and shelter for an hour or two. We saw many bands of hippopotami this morning, nine or ten generally going together. They approached the boat with a boldness and confidence which showed they had been little shot at by white men. However, the natives here hunt them as- siduously with the harpoon. Indeed in one creek, where the hippopotami were indulging in their uncouthest gambols, we ourselves saw a group of men some twenty yards from their prey, actively pre- paring for the chase. The tameness of these huge beasts is wonderful; one could almost fancy oneself in the enclosure of some vaster Zoological Garden; and when they opened their huge mouths, from time to time, displaying their glistening tusks, I sought involuntarily for the bun of my childhood to deftly throw into the pink chasm that yawned before me. Flocks of grey parrots* flew across the sky, alternately screeching and whistling melodiously. I have seen it stated erroneously that the grey parrot never whistles in a wild state; on the contrary, it does so very sweetly and with a great variety of note. * These birds are found in incredible quantities on Stanley Pool. If Cross or Jamrach established themselves here, parrots would soon be advertised in England athalf-a-crown a-piece. I earnestly hope they may not, and that the Expedition, in acquir- ing such control over these territories, will extend to the wild things of nature the same protection from rapine as they promise to the indigenous men and women.STANLEY POOL. 187 The newly-appointed agent at Kimpoko had seen us coming from afar and had prepared a welcome breakfast. Underneath a roughly-made awning, in the middle of a grove of Hyphoene palms, with a circle of natives eagerly watching our strange doings, we sat down to a meal which proudly exhibited the resources of the Kimpoko commissariat. First of all, as a pick-me-up, a good glass of malafu, made from the sugar-cane; then fried fish not unlike grey mullet, a splendid eel with creamy flesh and a very delicate flavour; then various meats skilfully cooked with native sauces, followed by a banana pud- ding and pine-apples. This was not a meal to be grum- bled at anywhere, and many a similar one may be enjoyed in Africa if the traveller cares to forage for its com- ponent parts. How many people residing on the Congo take the trouble to fish for themselves? And yet what sport they might have! No, they languidly dawdle about their AN INHABITANT OF KIMPOKO. verandahs and leave it to native enterprise to occasionally provide them with a fish course to their dinner. And if no natives come, then they are content to live perpetually on tinned provisions, a most costly form of nourishment and one that is only188 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. excusable in barren places like Kinsembo, where hardly any native food is to be got, and where there is no interior transport to be paid for. The people of Kimpoko that surrounded us during our meal were good-humoured and well-behaved. They had a great variety of modes in dressing their hair, which is certainly much longer and more abundant than in the coast races. The chief of Kimpoko paid us a visit after breakfast. He seemed a very gloomy, haughty person, and, I believe, was rather offended at my many questions through the interpreter, and my constant habit of sketching the attendant wives who were with him. It is sacrilege, seemingly, to see the king drink, so before satis- fying his thirst he shrouds his face in his mantle, gives a few quiet gulps behind it, and re- turns the glass empty as if he had been performing a conjur- ing trick. The chief seemed to think this ceremony would a little impress me, and looked out of the corners of his eyes to see if I was attending, but I felt in an irreverent mood, and let him know that I had frequently seen chiefs perform just the same precautions against sorcery or poison when about to drink. Indeed the peculiar rites and observances which attend the act of drinking among the chiefs A QUEEN OF KIMPOKO.STANLEY POOL. 189 of certain African tribes are very complex and curious, as will be seen in a future chapter, but their origin is, I confess, somewhat obscure, and the ex- planations offered by the natives are improbable and inadequate. As one approaches the farther—the northern— end of Stanley Pool, the scenery really becomes very beautiful. On the left-hand side is a range of bold and picturesque heights, their sides clothed with purple woodland. In the middle distance are groups THE NORTHERN END OF STANLEY POOL. of fine and spreading trees, standing out well against the blue hills, in all their vivid summer green; and here and there the always graceful fan-palm seems to balance itself on its slender stem above the water, so symmetrical in shape that it appears planted for artistic effect. On the right hand, the narrowing stream is shut in by splendid hanging forests, rising to a great height sheer above the banks of the river, and casting their sombre reflections on its placid190 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. surface, where a white line of ripples becomes a positive relief to the eye. But as to relief in this study of purple and green, what can be finer than a flock of egrets crossing the river with their fanciful irregular flight! Their plumage of perfect white, which gains them the qualifying name of “ candidis- sima,”* their yellow beaks, and their graceful forms tell out so strongly against the sombre forest, that an effective picture is formed at once. ; The banks here begin to be most markedly fes- tooned and trellised with a curious Calamus or climbing palm, the fronds of which are prolonged into a bare creeping stalk, furnished with curiously reversed hooks, so that once the frond falls against a branch it attaches itself securely by means of these recurved thorns, and thus climbs higher and higher, often fringing the top of the forest with graceful heads of swaying fronds which with their waving whip-like terminations point straight skywards as if seeking for greater heights to climb. The motto of this palm should certainly be “ Excelsior,” and it might also be taken as a vegetable type of ambition. Beginning in the lowliest form—the young palm looks like a broad-leaved bamboo with divided leaves —suggesting strongly its poorer and simpler rela- tions, it soon begins to aspire, and from being first a ground-growing shrub, it throws out a long flexible stem rising far above the first humble set of fronds, * I find this is the name of the American species; it is, how- ever, quite as applicable to the egrets of Africa.STANLEY FOOL. 191 and by means of its sharp hooks making use of every support in its way to climb higher and higher. Soon the leaves or fronds become more elegant. They split up from their previous bifid condition into many filaments, and at length the once lowly, feeble thing, by making use of everything that comes in its way and.can give it a lift, looks proudly forth from the top of some giant tree, and, for a while content with the attainment of its ambition, has time to pause and throw out its flowers, which turn to bunches of scarlet dates. Its fruit has a thin sweetish pulp around it which seems harmless, at any rate to man, but I have never noticed any bird or beast devouring it. The colour of the leaves is a yellow-green, and it forms a decidedly bright addition to the river landscapes. The curious thing is that it is nowhere to be seen on the Congo between Stanley Pool and the coast. With the rapids it comes to an end, and therefore, as one of the first striking addi- tions to the flora of the Congo which is met with on Stanley Pool, I have chosen it to illustrate the heading of this chapter. We camped out after leaving Kimpoko in a beauti- ful spot near the end of the Pool, in a forest clearing. Unfortunately the mosquitoes swarmed to such a dreadful degree that all comfort was out of the question, and I had to take my meals as hastily as possible, stamping and swearing meanwhile at each successive bite; and with reason, for whether these mosquitoes were distinctly venomous, or whetherL92 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. my impoverished blood was easily poisoned, either for one. reason or the other every bite turned to an ulcer, so that my ankles and neck were in a few days covered with disagreeable little sores, remain- ing comparatively painless, but quite incurable until I left the coast of Africa. It was little use, even, on this occasion to seek shelter inside my mosquito- curtains, for somehow or other many blood-suckers contrived to enter and I passed a miserable night. The myriads of disappointed mosquitoes which remained outside kept up a continuous and sonorous humming, so irritating in its unvarying tone, that the occasional snorts and grunting of the hippopo- tami in the neighbouring grass-fields proved quite an agreeable interruption.CHAPTER VIII. STANLEY POOL TO THE WABUMA. Native Canoes—Butterflies—Flora and Fauna of the River- banks— Banana-cooking — Ngui— Narrow Escape from a Hippopotamus—The Birds—The Native Dogs—Lieutenant Janssen — Msuata — A Bayansi Village — Native Hair- dressing— Personal Decoration — A Sacred Tree — Mys- terious Slaves. 0STANLEY POOL, I TO THE WABUMA. Some extracts from the diary kept %\ during my j fortnight’s V voyage up the river beyond Stanley Pool will perhaps most exactly give the impressions o 2 Wl i Mi Hyphoene ventricosci.196 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. made on me at the time by the aspect of things on the Upper Congo. February 2‘Srd, 1883.—I rose early, as soon as the least diffusion of cold light was observable, and left my bed and tent precipitately. ' The mosquitoes HIGH-WOODED BANKS OF CONGO. rendered one’s toilet a maddening torture, and I was thankful to repair to the boat and eat some fried bananas there over a pleasant book. As we left the great expansion of the Pool and entered the narrower Congo, the forest scenery became extravagantly rich,STANLEY POOL TO TEE WABUMA. 197 and many vegetable wonders were displayed before our eyes. Further on, the face of this wild African nature has a little changed. On the north, or more properly on the western, bank, the high wooded hills continue, but along the other side stretches flat and sandy woodland, with occasional tiny rills of delicious water that is much preferable to that of the Congo for drinking purposes. A little while before sunset, we suddenly see some native canoes ap- proaching, heavily loaded with goods. There is now some hope of fresh food, and my threatened regime of tinned provisions will be averted. As the boat rounds a little spit of sand, we come upon a consider- able concourse of people, who welcome us in a most friendly manner, with much clapping of hands and crying of “ Mbote.” Unfortunately, there is little to be had after all in the way of provisions. I buy some dried fish and a large jar of malafii, and am grossly cheated in both, for the fish is rotten, and the malafii has been filled up with muck and the refuse of the sugar-cane. However, this is not discovered until afterwards, and we part on the best of terms. These people are all coming from Bolobd, and are bringing ivory to sell to Ngaliema at Stanley Pool. I camped out rather late this evening, and fortunately hit upon a very pleasant spot in which to pass the night—a little clearing surrounded by the forest, with a pellucid stream of water running on one side of it to the Congo. Not a mosquito was to be seen. Thank Heaven ! I dined comfortably and afterwards198 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. took a little walk along the river-shore by moonlight. The hippopotami, though not visible, were snorting loudly, the fishing-eagles were screaming at some- thing that displeased them; goat-suckers and other night-birds were uttering their plaintive cries, and every now and then there was the sound of a splash and a swish in the water as some big crocodile had slid off the bank, startled at the crunching of my footsteps on the sandy beach. Feb. 24#A.—A delicious, dreamless night. Why should there be no mosquitoes here, and such incred- ible myriads a few miles lower down ? The sur- roundings are apparently the same. The morning breaks lovely, and the day promises to pass without rain. We stopped about eleven o’clock to do some necessary washing and cooking. The spot chosen was a long stretch of sand, backed by thick forest. On the moist, smooth shore were hundreds of butter- flies, many of most beautiful colours, azure blue and brilliant leaf-green. They collected in numbers round little patches of calcareous earth, where, in common with many bees, wasps, and dragon-flies, they seemed to find something so attractive that they never even moved at our approach, and one could catch them tranquilly by the thorax and pinch their life away before they could collect their airy faculties. The forest rising above the sand-bank was intersected with paths made by the buffaloes coming down to drink; and farther towards the interior was an open space trampled with their footmarks, theSTANLEY POOL TO TEE WABUMA. 199 whole place having a strangely farm-yard look and smell. In the forest were many cnestis hushes with bright scarlet seed-vessels, and others with orange pods, so that the masses of green leaves were quite enlivened by these points of colour. We met some canoes this afternoon going down to Stanley Pool, filled with ivory, but with this exception there was no sign of man for some distance after leaving Kimpoko. The country, especially on the western bank, appears quite uninhabited,* and is a beautiful, uncultivated waste, with verdant slopes like natural meadows, clumps of shady forest and numberless rills of water. The vegetation overhanging the river is of a very rich character, and endlessly varying and ever-charming effects ; above all, when it is mirrored in some tranquil bay, where the deep green of the foliage becomes enhanced by a brilliant shore line of yellow white sand, and the tender grace and the fanciful forms of the many parasitic creepers contrast with the whitened snags and fallen trees which rear their gnarled limbs out of the placid water. On these snags are perched many water birds. Little jewel-like kingfishers, smalt-blue and verditer, with scarlet beaks; queer little bitterns, scarcely distin- guishable by their modest grey coats and angular bearing from the branch on which they are posed, and an occasional black-and-white vulture or a sacred ibis. These spots offer a continual succession of little pictures with a never-ending natural charm, * Through recent internecine wars on the part of the natives.200 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. whether in diversity of composition or colouring. The sun has set and night has fallen ere we land at a village which as yet bears no name known to white men. It stands a little distance back from the river, but some natives fortunately come down and sell us fowls and bananas. I did not dine this evening until ten o’clock, but when Mafta at length announced the meal ready, I found it most enjoyable, for I had gained a great appetite and the dinner happened to be well cooked, one fowl being turned into soup and the other roasted. Moreover Mafta has got into the way of making delicious “ competes de bananes. ” He takes half-a-dozen of the small, sweet bananas, those that the French call “ bananes d’argent,” boils them in a little water to a pulp, puts in a spoonful of butter, the juice of a lemon, two or three drops of brandy (to replace sherry), stirs the whole vigorously, and turns out what seems to me an irreproachable addition to our African cuisine. These little plump bananas are intensely sweet, so much so that no sugar is ever needed in cooking them. 'They, indeed, make up to me for the present want of sac- charine matter which I am enduring. I have to drink my coffee without sugar, but the fried banana cakes quite atone for this want. During my repast, I enjoyed the aesthetic delights of bright moonlight shining in softened radiance through the overarching forest, while numberless fireflies, like little points of electric light, whiz round the thick bushes. There are no mosquitoes.STANLEY POOL TO THE WABUMA. 201 here, and with the tranquil peace that pervades our little encampment, the perfect health that I enjoy, I feel that there are moments in Congo travel when a life of civilization is little to be envied. February 25 th.—This morning a number of people, men, women and children, flocked down to see us and to sell fowls and other articles of food. The chief, a decidedly good-looking man of about thirty, came also, and one of his attendant wives spread a leopard-skin for him to sit on. He had two little bells hung round his neck, with a multitude of teeth and beads; the teeth, which were of monkeys and leopards, being strung into fantastic necklaces. He was pleasant and affable, and both he and his wives roared with laughter when, in order to ascertain the name of leopard in their dialect I leapt and snarled to imitate that animal. They call him here Ngui, a word which under slightly changing forms is common to many Bantu tongues. In Kiswahili it is Chui. A curious point about the Bantu languages is that the name for lion varies greatly, while that for leopard, and, above all, dog, is comparatively unchanging. The people at this village had ground- nuts (.Arachis liypogcea) for sale, a thing I have not seen for some time on the Congo. In the river here, hippopotami are as abundant and impudent as usual. Shortly after we had set off this morning, I was startled considerably, and my breakfast went flying out of my lap at the sudden and unexpected bump which a big hippopotamus gave to the bottom of202 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. the boat. If we had been in a canoe he would, of course, have wrecked us; as it was, although he did no great harm, yet, on afterwards examining the keel we found a decided dent in it where he had struck the iron. I felt so cross at having my nice breakfast scattered over the luggage, that I seized my Winchester, and fired it at his head as the great creature lifted it from the water a few yards off to see what damage he had done. I don’t think I killed him, but his struggles in the water and the streaks of blood appearing round the spot showed that he had been sharply warned not to molest travellers again. On a sand bank where I stopped to bargain with some natives, there was an even greater number of butterflies collected than yesterday. They seemed to be drinking with intense pleasure from the wet shore, and I caught ten of them in no time by simply laying hold of them by the thorax. The natives on this island were all seated in trees, perhaps for the sake of shade, but they looked terribly like gorillas. The commonest birds along the river, which hereabouts has an average breadth of 800 yards, are Egyptian geese, Gfypohierax vultures, grey parrots, jacymas,* darters,f and the chocolate- brown Scopus umbretta. I also saw, but failed to shoot, Lophotibis, a curious dun-coloured species of ibis, with greenish wings, and a relatively short * Parra Africana. f Plotus levaillanti.STANLEY POOL TO THE WABUMA. 203 bill, very deep at the base, the general contour of the bird recalling the above-named Scopus um- hretta. February 26th.—-The scenery is becoming really picturesque. Ordinarily the Congo .is beautiful in detail, unimposing as a whole. Indeed for a river of its magnitude it would need Alps to form suitable cliffs for such a breadth of water. In this portion, however, some of the general effects are strikingly impressive. A splendid expanse of stream reflects on its placid surface the blue sky and creamy-white clouds above it; on one side are green hills and. purple woods, and on the other the inimitably graceful Hyphoene palms which in rows and groups rise on their- slender trunks high above the low green shrubs, and crown majestically the long spits of white sand that launch themselves boldly into the shining, all-reflecting river. The Zanzibaris having found a fine fish just caught in one of the native basket-work traps, ask permission to stop at some sand-bank and cook it. This is accorded, and we are soon alongside a long reach of sand, on which some Ba-yansi are already seated. Of course our reception is cordial, and whilst the Zanzibaris are commencing their cooking I go off to see the native village close by, called Mbila. It is a pretty, contented, quiet-looking spot, embosomed in great groves of bananas, and sur- rounded by plantations of manioc. At the time I enter it, except a few women who are attending204 A JOTJRNET UP THE RIVER CONGO. to their household duties, every one is absent on the beach, chaffering with the Zanzibaris, therefore I have it pretty much to myself; but my arrival causes much excitement among the fowls and dogs, who apparently are frightened at my white face, and fly in all directions. The fowls cackle and screech, but the dogs are too awestruck to make any noise; indeed in this country they never seem' to have acquired the power of barking. In front of several dwellings are the signs of domestic vocations being actively carried on. Large jars and other vessels of pottery are standing to dry in the sun, and basket- work in all its stages is lying about. The houses are well constructed and well kept, and the people, who are now flocking back to the village, look well fed and prosperous. Involuntarily the thought comes to me, “ What a contented, peaceful sort of life this is! ” Few wants, and those easily supplied ; no luxury, and no starvation; no yearnings after the unknown, no vague, unsatisfied aspirations, and no heart-breakings: everything thoroughly positive, well-ordered, and material. How will this meet the shock of advancing civilization—of the approach- ing contact of black and white ? The natives tell me I am the first of my colour who has set foot in their village, and they seem proud and pleased at my visit. May they never look back to it with sorrow, as marking the advent of a new and trou- blous change in their hitherto peaceful annals! The chief of Mbila presented me ere leaving with aSTANLEY POOL TO TEE WAB11MA. 205 fleeting souvenir of the village in the shape of the biggest plantains I have ever seen. They mea- sured twenty inches in length and were very eatable. Now the sky began to threaten. Fearful peals of thunder resounded over the distant hills, and flashes of lightning played against the sombre grey clouds. Yet we escaped for a long time the threatened down- pour, whilst the storm rolled half round the horizon, but at last we could hope no longer for immunity, and I strained my eyes anxiously to see the station of Msuata, which the Zanzibaris were already able to descry with their practised vision. Great drops began to fall, and when we at length landed on the clayey shore a tremendous sheet of rain was hissing through the air, hurrying the still lingering twilight into darkness. The chief of the station was absent at the time I arrived, but his men showed me the most prompt attention, and I was soon installed in a comfortable bedroom, able to wash, change my clothes, and ascertain the damage my luggage had sustained—an almost daily occupation. . February 27/A.—When I had risen this morning I found that Lieutenant Janssen (the chief of Msuata Station) had arrived late the night before from a visit to a great chief across the water, Mpumo Ntaba (the “ goat ’’ chief), Makoko’s successor. He was, however, already up, and gave me a very kind welcome when I went to meet him in the salle a manger, where an appetising breakfast had206 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. been prepared. It consisted—if you are not tired of continually perusing African menus—of mugs of goat’s milk flavoured with a little tea, roast chickens, and “ kikwanga ” fried in ground-nut oil. (“Kikwanga” is, as I have already told you, the root of the manioc or cassava pounded, soaked and fermented, somewhat sour and “ gluey ” in taste. There is the ordinary article, called here by the natives Bingolo, and a superior kind more carefully prepared, with little air-holes in it like a Gruyere cheese. This is Luku, and it faintly resembles muffins when hot and eaten with butter). M. Janssen is one of the most practical and sen- sible members of the Expedition* His talent for making the best of limited resources is wonderful, and Msuata, purely through his energetic and enterprising labours, has become one of the most comfortable stations on the route. He has con- structed a swimming-bath by damming up a little river, he has made a large and a small gridiron out of the barrels of damaged guns, a table and benches from the planks of old canoes, and an oven of sun- dried bricks. He has planted a kitchen-garden which produces all manner of vegetables; has organised a well-stocked poultry-yard, containing over eighty fowls, with a house for their numerous eggs to be laid in; four or five of his goats are always in milk; and amongst other discoveries he * He is since unhappily dead ; drowned by the upsetting of a canoe* on the Congo, July, 1883.STANLEY POOL TO TEE WABUMA. 207 has learnt to make native salads and sauces, and to extract an excellent oil from the ground-nuts, which at once serves for cooking purposes and for lighting up the lamps lie has manufactured to use when his candles give out. Around the station of Msuata, the commonest birds are little u bishop ” finches, or more properly, weaver-birds, with scarlet and black plumage ; huge plantain-eaters,* blue-green in colour, with a violet crest; large bee-eaters, kites, egrets, and cuckoos. On the northern bank of the river the lion is said to be known, and the chief Makoko received De Brazza seated on the skin of one of these animals. If jFells leo is really found in this part of the Congo region it is curious, as he is not a forest-loving animal, and moreover would not find in these countries the herds of big game which are and have been the raison d'etre of this great cat. The natives on the northern bank opposite Msuata profess to know the gorilla, and certainly describe it accurately, but say it is found far inland, and does not reach to the banks of the Congo. A curious roller-bird, Eurystomus, is found here, and in small numbers mobs and chases fiercely the hawks and fishing-eagles of the river. The country in the neighbourhood of Msuata is thickly populated, in fact we are beginning to enter the densely-peopled basin of the Upper Congo. The villages hereabouts belong principally to * Schizorhis gigantea.208 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. the Ba-teke men, and the Ba-yansi people that one meets with are mostly traders and not as yet settled in any permanent colonies. Farther up the Congo, these two races are strangely intermixed, the villages being often alternately of either nationality. Still, while the Ba-teke seem to have their real home and origin to the FT.W. and towards the Ogowe, the Ba-yansi come from further up the river, and border on the (so-called) savage Ba-ngala of the Equator. February 28th.—We started this morning for the mouth of the Wabiima River, fifteen miles from Msuata, where I intended to stop the night in a large village. On our way we passed the curious pro- montory of Ganchu—a long spit of land advancing into the river, which seems to alternate between island and peninsula. Here is situated the village of Ganchu, ruled by an important and powerful chief of that name, who, like Lutete and other minor potentates on the Congo, gives his name to his residential town. The houses of this village are mostly built on piles, evidently, as the ground is low, to minimise the dangers and inconveniences of a flood. It was this village that Stanley, on his first and celebrated descent of the Congo, imagined to be. inhabited by river pirates, misunderstanding the peaceful intention of the inhabitants, and it is to this day, I believe, marked “ Piraten Dorf” on the German maps.* * It is not altogether certain that Stanley may not have had excellent reasons for his first designation of Ganchu’s village.STANLEY POOL TO THE WABUMA. 209 At the mouth of the Wabuma River (which parenthetically, I might mention flows from Lake Leopold II., joins the great Kwango from Angola, and enters the Congo about 3° 20' S. latitude*) is a large and populous Ba-yansi village, the first fixed Having had in later days the honour of an intimate personal acquaintance with Ganchu, I can quite conceive he could do a little quiet pirating on a weak passer-by. It is all very well for him now, in 1883, to profess undying brotherly love for the great and powerful “ Bula Matadi,” now that he is able, if necessary, to repel attacks; but I am not so sure that in 1877, when the harassed, half-starved Stanley rushed down the un- known Congo, that Ganchu may not have been disposed to try on a little piracy. However, let bygones be bygones—Ganchu is now a most virtuous, respectable, law-abiding person, quite fit to be a churchwarden, with a leetle leaning, perhaps, to a gorgeous' ceremonial—but most anxious to give to any “ Mwana Bula Matadi,” any “Child of Stanley’s,” a hospitable and friendly reception. * The Wabuma-Kwango stream at its juncture with the Congo is about as broad as the Thames at Westminster. The landscapes and riverscapes along the banks of this affluent are pretty, being mostly shadowy water and rich forest, but other- wise, considering the bulk of this mighty river, it is unimposing. The mouth of the Wabuma-Kwango is not very well adapted for navigation, there being a long sand-bank on one side, and a line of rocks on the other, only a tortuous passage lying between, while the force of the current through this channel is very strong. The upper course of the Wabuma much resembles the Congo in appearance. Issuing from Lake Leopold II., an expansion of water about seventy miles in length, it broadens out greatly in a flat country of dense forest, and is covered with many islands. It narrows again where it receives the great Kwango, and the embouchure of these two great rivers united is somewhat insignificant. Their waters flow for some time side Ty side without mingling with those of the Congo. P210 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. settlement of this enterprising tribe to be encountered on a journey up the Congo. It is exactly at the confluence of the Wabuma and the Congo, and is very picturesque as seen from the. water, a broad lane leading up to a grove of oil-palms and bananas, with compact and tidy-looking bouses interspersed among them ; but the favourable impression is rather spoilt on landing by the horrible black fetid mud, strewn with decaying offal, that one has to cross. The people, of course, are assembled to greet us, and the chief is there, clad in a rusty red garment and looking not half such a fine fellow as many of his subjects. These people here are a finer-looking race than any I have yet seen on the Congo. Some of the men are perfect Greek statues as regards the splendid development and poise of their figures. They all have pleasing faces because of the good humour which enlivens their features. Another re- markable point about them in their comparatively great development of hair, on the head especially, hut also at an early age all over the body, although arrived at maturity their persons are quite hairless, for, like most negroes, they dislike extremely all growth of hair on the body, and pluck out every hair that makes its appearance, scarcely liking even the beard to grow. However, en revanche, the hair of the head is much encouraged, and really attains to an astonishing length, and though crisp and curly, is tortured and twisted by its possessors into all sorts of fantastic coiffures. The men wear it usually inSTANLEY POOL TO THE WABUMA. 211 horns, either on the top of the head, or in a pigtail, or depending on each side of their cheek; also in a sort of “ chignon.” The women sometimes just frizz it up round the head, or comb it out smoothly and strain it over pads in a manner much resembling a hideous style in vogue with us some fifteen years ago; or they will plait it into an infinitude of little rat’s tails that, from their stiff- ness, stand up all round the head in a bristling manner. A red dye, which is got from the bark of a certain tree, probably the “camwood,”* is used to a great extent for colouring their nails, and often their bodies and clothes, with a warm tinge of red. They also further decorate themselves with white, yellow, and black patterns, made respectively with calcareous earth, yellow-ochre, and burnt wood. There is much diversity in these designs. Sometimes they will draw a white line round their eyelids and down the bridge of their noses, with a line of yellow straight down the body from the throat to the navel, and black patches on the cheek-bones; but the variety of patterns and designs is too numerous to catalogue. They also practise largely a curious mode of deco- ration by cicatrisation, scoring the cheeks with parallel lines, and forming eccentric designs, with raised weals or lumps of skin all over their bodies. The cloth they wear is nearly all of native manu- F 2 * BajpMa nitida.212 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. facture (made of woven grass), and is largely dyed and tinged with the favourite maroon dye. Did they know it, these home-made stuffs are far more tasteful than the staring Manchester cottons which they are just beginning to covet. The women are always more clothed than the men, from the time that they are nubile, but as children, and in ado- lescense they are generally free from even a scrap of clothing, whereas the little boys never seem unprovided with a tiny apron. The women do not attempt, as in some tribes, to hide their breasts; perhaps for the reason that their busts are modelled and developed to a much more artistic degree than is usual among African races. Some of the young girls are charming little creatures, with their tidily dressed hair, their small hands and feet, and their budding forms of woman- hood. Until they reach a marriageable age, they run about gaily in all the beauty and innocence of perfect nudity, the sole attempt at—what shall I say?—clothing, or personal adornment, being a large brass collar round the neck, and copper anklets. There was ope such child that I shall always re- member with affection in this village at the mouth of the Wabuma. We took a mutual fancy to one another, and she constituted herself my little guide, taking my hand with the greatest confidence and leading me through the village to show me the sights. Seeing me gather flowers to preserve, she afterwards presented me with an armful which sheSTANLEY POOL TO THE WABUMA. 213 had laboriously plucked, and later on she pressed into my hand three new-laid eggs, warm from the nest, from which she had probably robbed them. One word for the babies: they squall terribly, and are endowed with plentiful crops of hair, which is finer in quality and less curly than that of their grown-up parents. The people here have a regular craving for salt, and the chief was enraptured with the bestowal of a handful; one gentleman brought his wife, or one of his wives, and wished to exchange her for a moderate quantity of the precious condiment. There was a fine and handsome tree in the centre of a broad square here, covered with large yellow blossoms of graceful shape and delicate vanilla-like perfume. It was evidently regarded by the natives with some veneration, for I could see they did not like me to gather the flowers, and after I had picked one or two sprays, they asked me to desist, offering me yellow pumpkin flowers as an equivalent. I slept this night in a comfortable and cleanly house, divided into three rooms, which might be described as kitchen, parlour, and bedroom. The more we advance into the interior along the Congo, the higher in social science the natives seem to stand; the houses, their furniture, decoration and orderly comfort; the utensils, the pottery and the work in metal: all seem to undergo a material214 A JOURNEY UR THE RIVER OONOO. improvement and development in proportion as we leave the coast behind ns. March 1st.—We hid adieu to our friends this morning with many* protestations of mutual regard, and they came down to the slimy shore and shouted “ Mbote ! ” until we were out of sight. I was hardly in a state to reciprocate their boisterous friendship, for an insidious attack of fever was creeping over me. It began, as usual, with a great increase of mental activity. One is too excited to stop and write down one’s thoughts, although you feel that had you done so, some very brilliant things might have been preserved. But all exertion is disagree- able to the fever’s victim, and he feels content to sit and compose chapters of novels and disquisitions on Natural History problems in his whirling brain, without attempting to commit the fleeting kaleido- scope images to paper. This first stage of the fever is by no means disagreeable. One enjoys the same sensations as those produced by a sufficiency of good champagne; but, unfortunately, the phase of utter weariness and melancholy that follows is a bitter contrast to the preceding elevation and excitement, and the brilliant images of heretofore now seem trite stupidities.* We advanced but little to-day beyond the Wabuma, * However, I was singularly lucky in Africa. These fleeting touches of fever, rarely lasting more than a few hours, and scarcely worthy to be chronicled, were the only form of indispo- sition I ever had during my sixteen months passed in the Dark Continent.STANLEY POOL TO TEE WABTJMA. 215 for continuing to feel poorly, I stopped the boat at noon and had my tent put up on the eastern shore, so that I might go to bed and get rid of the fever. We were here nearly opposite to the embouchure of some large river flowing in on the western bank of the Congo.* The country is so populous hereabouts' that it is impossible to camp anywhere without being near a village, consequently we were soon sur- rounded by crowds of noisy though good-tempered natives. I noticed this afternoon among the people that came to look at me a curious type, quite different from the rest, a small youth (or a young man ?) with rather long, curly, and yellowish hair, arranged on his scalp in separate tufts, floconne, as the French would call it, having, moreover, a savage and wild expression on his features, and a general tournure of body recalling the hushmen whom I have seen in South-Western Africa. Curiously enough, there was an old woman, also with yellowish hair, and stunted in form, in the last village we passed. “ Yellowish ” is perhaps not quite accurate enough. I might rather say a dirty dun-colour like the skins of these queer beings. I made inquiries through the Zanzibaris as to who they were in each village, but beyond learning that they were slaves and came from the East, I ascertained nothing further, nor could I find out whether they belonged to a tribe of dwarfs or not. The little boy with his bow and * De Brazza’s Alima. The “ Lawson ” Kiver of Stanley.216 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. arrows and his savage face and gestures was a strange and striking type, utterly different to the grinning, good-tempered children round him, who, by contrast, appeared quite black, so pale in colour was his skin.CHAPTER IX. to b6l6b6. Mbongo—French Flags at Mbamo—Embe—Yalue of Salt— Footprints of Hippopotami — Sand-banks and Islands — Bolobo—The Great Chief Ibaka—The Mosquitoes—A Royal Visit—A Drinking Ceremony—Ibaka’s peculiar ITat—Houses at Bolobo—A Sketching Adventure—The Fetish Man— His Duties and Occupations — Herds of Elephants and Buffaloes — Animals of the District — Metals — Monkoli - Topaz.CHAPTER IX. to b6l6b6. March 2nd.—The forest scenery is be- coming richer and more “ tropical look- ing ” the further we advance towards the Equator, that is, I Pistia stratiotes. mean, that the vegetation is assuming the same lnxurian charac- ter, the wild exube- r a n t growth which are usually associated with aspects of nature | under an equatorial sun and a zone of con- stant rain. The stream of the Congo is at the220 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. present time thronged with masses of a brilliantly green water-plant, Pistia stratiotes, common to most tropical rivers. The recent floods have detached it from the little inlets and quiet reaches, where it ordinarily grows, and have brought it down in great quantities with the stream, and are also the cause of the many floating logs and torn-up trees which frequently block the navigation. There are many rocks along the river’s bank and stretching out some distance into the current, sug- gesting the idea of their being the remains of ancient cataracts. Indeed when one says that the falls of the Congo do not begin until below Stanley Pool, it is hardly correct. The only difference between the upper and lower river is this, that above Stanley Pool the rapids are never sufficiently serious to hinder navigation. About four o’clock, the men wanted to stop at a large and populous village, the natives of which, to the number of nearly a hundred, were assembled along the sandy beach imploring us to land and pass the night in their town. They vaunted the abundance of fowls, kikwanga, and other victuals, but I would not yield, for we had yet two hours of daylight which it was imperative not to waste, and I felt sure, as all this eastern side of the river is thickly populated, that we should be likely to find another village further on. We did so an hour and a half later, but there was a furious rapid to cross before we could reach it—one that had to be attemptedTO BOLOBO. 221 twice before we could struggle past the rocks. Unfortunately, the men broke two oars here, and, therefore, for the rest of the journey we shall have lost two rowers. Once we had landed, I felt pleased at having opposed the wishes of the Zanzibaris, - because I had gained two hours of daylight, passed the formidable rapids, and chosen for our night’s sojourn the nicest little village I have met with on the Congo. Its name is Mbongo. The people were very kind and courteous. They spread grass mats for me to sit on, brought me fresh malafu to drink, and seeing I had a feverish attack, left me in peace in my tent with many expressions of sympathy. Later on in the evening the chief arrived with a present of four fowls, a calabash of malafu, and, most welcome of all, some new-laid eggs. The malafu here is made exclusively from the juice of the sugar- cane. The fermented drink made from the wine palm (Raphia vinifera) or the oil-palm (Elais guineensis) is unknown, though in each village many of these trees are growing. Strange that the sugar- cane, another of the many gifts from rich America to needy Africa, should have spread so quickly and so far inland, and have become so identified with the habits and customs of its new cultivators. Though this cane was originally an inhabitant of Eastern Asia, and was introduced by the Arabs to Europe, and by the Europeans to America, still Western Africa received it from the latter continent in the seven-222 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. teenth century through the hands of the Portu- guese.* March 3rd.— I obtained this morning a basket- work fish-trap from a boy, with a few curious fish in it. Most of them were too damaged to be of any use, but one, fortunately just caught and still alive, was in excellent preservation, so I set to work and drew it as we went along in the boat. Just as I was finishing the sketch we approached a village called Mbamo, where two or three tattered French flags were flying. At first the natives answered civilly our questions, and told us that Malamine (Malamine was a Senegalese sergeant of De Brazza’s) had given them the tricoloured banners of France; but after- wards, when we proposed landing to cook the lunch, they began to grow very insolent and menacing— they yelled and shrieked at us in gradually increasing wrath, and, whilst the women and children fled into the village, the men got their guns and began cramming stones into the muzzles. They were very near firing, but the Zanzibaris showed their Sniders opportunely, and at the same time rowed out into the stream, and we passed the place without break- ing the peace. Curiously enongh, on rounding a * Since writing this, I find on examining the subject by means of Cameron’s and Stanley’s books, together with other authorities, that the sugar-cane seems to be cultivated right across Africa from east to west. Possibly, therefore, the West Africans owe it to the Arabs, who brought it to the east coast a thousand years ago, whence it has spread all over the continent.TO BOLOBO. 22.3 little point of rocks, and arriving at another village, we found the people there perfectly friendly and pleasant. They waded out to the boat and shook hands, and looked at my sketch-book with screams of delight. The chief here, at this village of Embe, had a most unusual crop of hair. These Ba-yansi are, indeed remarkable for the abundance and glossi- ness of their “ chevelure.” In the next village (the eastern bank of the river has become a continuous series of hamlets) I saw a woman with an even more magnificent head of hair. Her locks were combed out in a sort of “ aureola ” round her well-shaped head. This race of the Ba-yansi, and, indeed, all other highly devel- oped types of Bantu peoples, remind me so much, with their high- noses and bushy hair, of the Papuans, as one may judge of them from the descriptions and photographs of Wallace and other travellers. The banks of the Congo are here and for some distance further back strewn with great masses of rock, seemingly of igneous origin. Inter- spersed among these craggy blocks are patches THE CHIEF OF EMBE.224 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. of silvery sand, and the natives run along the banks, jumping from rock to rock to try and keep up with the boat. Some of them, generally women carrying babies, will get far ahead, and station themselves on some little promontory, thence hailing our approach with deafening screams and laughter. The villages are very prettily situated amid majestic groves of oil-palms and bright green bananas, with a back- ground of deep purple forest. The neatly made houses, often quite yellow in colour from the sun-burnt grass with which they are thatched, overhang the river on the edge of a slight plateau, and form a pretty contrast against the dark green vegetation. Numbers of grey parrots are here, and they seem to rather seek than avoid the society of man, for in every village they flock to the oil-palms, where they squawk and whistle all day long. Now the Congo begins to open out into truly splendid breadth. Right before us is a clear horizon of water and sky, only broken by one wooded islet that stands right in the middle of the stream. The river is as broad or broader here than Stanley Pool. A traveller viewing the Congo from this direction, and knowing nothing of what was before him, might well believe he was entering upon some great lake or inland sea. The day is magnificent; and, towards the close of a tranquil afternoon, when the sky assumes a faint golden tone, the great smooth sheet of waterto bol6bo. 225 of the same rich colour, stretches away towards the horizon, where it melts indistinguishably into the warm sky. Save one or two ripples that look like blue scratches on its surface, there is nothing to disturb its glowing calm, and the very hippopotami, who but a short while before were playing, splash- ing and snorting so obstreperously, seem awed into quietude by the perfect air of peace that envelopes everything. The foliage of the great forest trees that tower above the shore, where the tiniest of wavelets are lapping the golden sand, is unmoved by the slightest breeze, and the few salmon-coloured clouds that have mounted the horizon are arrested in their flight, and hang motionless in the mel- low sky. It is a harmony in the palest pink and the palest gold, to which the Zanzibaris are quite insensible, for they interrupt my musings by asking if they may stop for the night at a large and populous village which we have just reached, and their request is seconded by the natives on the shore, who offer us the most vociferous greetings and entreaties to honour their village with our presence. However, it is only four o’clock, and we have two hours more daylight, so I will not yield, and the Zanzibaris with a very bad grace put their oars into the water again. They rowed for about an hour, but did not make much progress, for there were several rapids to cross, and the men were, or affected to be, tired, and patted their stomachs lugubriously, predicting “ no chop and natives Q226 A JOURNEY UR TEE RIVER CONGO. plenty bad ” at the next village we meet. They are fairly right, for when we direct our course towards some huts embosomed in palm trees at the end of a pretty little creek, the inhabitants rush down to the beach and ask us in African phrase- ologj just to wait until they can get their guns, and then they will give us a warm reception. Even the little boys imitate the action of putting a gun to the shoulder with their tiny lances, and the women shriek, and laugh, and utter all sorts of derisive things. I suspect it was more than half of it “ show off,” as, had there been any prospect of a real conflict, the women and children would have been sent away to the bush. However, as it was only five o’clock and there was sure to be another village round the distant point of rocks (we could already distinguish its bananas and palm-trees) it was decided that we should leave these inhospitable savages to themselves. We were soon in front of the next hamlet, whence a friendly greeting reached us over the water, but between us and them stretched a terrible line of rocks and breakers that took us a whole hour to cross, the men having to get into the water and drag the boat along by main force. Our landing was momentarily delayed by the arrival of a deputa- tion from the preceding village, which had followed us quickly along the shore. They met the friendly natives and entreated them not to let us land, but the timely waving of some bright coloured pocket- handkerchiefs and the jingling of brass rods decidedTO BO LOB 6. 227 all hesitation as to our reception, and the hostile natives beat a swift and ignominious retreat, followed by the taunts of the friendly ones. We landed at dusk, and were met with a clamour of greetings that THE FRIENDLY VILLAGE. was perfectly deafening. Fowls and eggs were brought for sale, and, though rather dear, I bought them to strengthen our mutual friendship, for there is nothing like commerce to inspire confidence and lull suspicion. When I gave one man a handful of Q 2228 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. salt, which they call “ Mpongwe,” his yells of delight were quite painful, whilst each of his comrades repeated after him, with an hysterical, and a falsetto voice, “ Mpongwe, Mpongwe ! ” Therefore, being on terms of such cordiality, I took the liberty of asking them to go away and let me eat and sleep in peace, which to my relief, they promptly did, telling the Zanzibaris before leaving that I must indeed be a great chief to possess two whole bottles of salt. March Ath,—-What a miserable morning \ One can hardly believe oneself in the same world as yesterday —a sky filled with fearful storm-clouds and a thick rain falling. It required some resolution to start, and the Zanzibaris suggested our remaining till noon where we were, but right or wrong I insisted on going on. I don’t think I stood very well in the men’s graces this morning. Yesterday I gave them two hours more work than they wanted, and to-day I made them start in the rain. Two or three smart showers followed up the storm, then a burst of furious wind which lashed the Congo into waves and rocked our boat as if we were on the sea; then a dead calm and, at last, our faithless friend, the sun, veiling himself with white clouds, appeared in a half-hearted, shame-stricken manner. About noon, the orb now shining brightly, we stopped at a little island, one of the many that dot the surface of the vast river, to give the men time to cook their bananas. It was not remarkable for much beyondTO BOLOBO. 229 footprints in the moist soil. I drew several of these impressions in my sketch-book, as they gave an ex- cellent idea of the “ artiodactyle ” foot in an incipient stage. Here too, and on other neighbouring islands, was growing a papilionaceous plant new to me, having leaves and a thorny stem like the mimosas, with flowers of a gaudy orange. Towards sunset we halted at a sand-bank, or sandy island, in the middle of the Congo, half a mile in width and perhaps a mile long. On arriving, a multitude of water birds were in possession, but at our approach they flew off to other haunts. There only remained large flocks of red-billed terns, which circled and screamed round our heads as if demand- ing compensation for being turned out of their own property. Here, .on this island, it seemed like the land of a visionary. A gorgeous sunset, with glowing masses of golden-red clouds irradiated the west, and re- peated its glories with almost undiminished brilliancy in the vast sheet of tranquil water. On one side of us fantastically wooded, palm-crested islets floated in reflected gold, with every branch and frond of their tree-tops telling out against the shining sky. Long lines of weary birds flew low over the water, with faint cries of greeting to each other as they neared their shelter for the night. On the other side of the island, and so close as almost to overshadow us, great masses of waterside forest rose into the sky, tinged with the warm yellow light of the opposite230 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. sunset, and filling with their long and clear reflections the strait of water that lay between them and our sandy shore. The grey parrots were in high spirits to-night, as they flew home across the river. They seemed to he telling each other “ good things ” as they passed over our heads in little bands, for their exulting screams and chuckling whistles were full of wild merriment. Whenever the grey parrot appears to be in a good temper flying home it is a sign, according to my observation, that the morrow is going to he a fine day, as also when he is out on his travels early in the morning. At length the glowing - sunset died away, and 1 had, half reluctantly, to turn from this dreamland, where somehow thoughts of home seemed insensibly mingled with the clouds, the birds and the shimmer- ing water, and attend to the necessities of the moment. Without my personal superintendence dinner would be an uncertain result, so the chest of provisions had to be unpacked and its contents dis- tributed ; and whilst Mafta, the Zanzibari cook, my pupil in the culinary art, was killing a lean fowl, first reverently saying, “ In the name of Allah” as he cut its throat, I sat on a camp-stool dealing out the preserved vegetables, the lemon-juice, the flour, butter, rice, bananas, salt and pepper, that were to go, together with the fowl bouillon, to make a perfect soup. The flesh has to be cut off from the fowl bones, and is put with them into the pot toTO SOL OB 6. 231 simmer slowly. Then the liver and gizzard are chopped up fine and thrown into the savoury bubbling broth, and tbe result is an appetising and soothing soup, in which a great amount of nourish- ment may be commodiously swallowed. The pre- paration of this meal, however, is somewhat lengthy, and ere it is served to me on my impromptu table of chests and boxes, the dusky drowsy night has swallowed up the beauties of the twilight. How utter is the feeling of isolation here! There is nothing to alarm or sadden, on the contrary, the girdle of darkness round our little island gives it a cosy feeling of security and peace, but we seem here so remote from everything but the stars. March. 5 th.—We started by the early dawn in order to reach Bolobo by the evening if possible. The river, in this part of its course, owing no doubt to its great breadth, appears to be very shallow, and the boat is constantly running aground on sand-banks ; nor do the natives’ canoes that are round us escape entirely this contrariety, however slight their draught of water may be. It has a very extraordinary effect to see men walking halfway over a great branch of the river, with water only up to their ankles, tracing the course of some hidden sand-bank. The high hills and downs that have hitherto bordered the Congo begin to grow more and more distant, and finally disappear into blue obscurity. One last range comes into view and terminates abruptly in a solitary peak, somewhat picturesquely jagged, and then the great basin of central Africa232 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. begins, and splendid forests take possession of the banks of the river, woods of such a magnificent character that I think I have never seen richer growth of vegetation in Africa. There are here so many islands that it is difficult to see the mainland, except at rare intervals. One of them alone is ten miles long. A great concourse of people, and an almost con- tinuous series of villages on the east bank, show that we are entering the very populous district of Bolobo. At the principal assemblage of houses, in a pictur- esque and leafy spot, the Zanzibaris stop rowing, for the great chief of all this district, Ibaka, 44 Roi de Bolobo,” as he is called in the Expedition, is seen wending his way down to the beach, accompanied by many women, to greet the white man who has entered his territory. He wears a hat as famous as that of Chumbiri in Stanley’s 4 Dark Continent.9 Ibaka comes down to the water-side, leans over the boat and shakes hands cordially, after which, with many 44 Mbotes’’—magic word !—we continue our route on towards the station, while Ibaka shouts out an equivalent to 44 an re voir.” We can now descry our destination on a distant headland, but, in spite of the utmost efforts on the part of the Zanzibaris, we don’t arrive until nightfall, for we are constantly sticking on sand-banks and running upon sunken trees. Bolobo station* is situated on the summit of a bluff * This establishment was the farthest settlement of white men on the Congo at the time of my visit, but now (December, 1883,) there are other stations founded far beyond it.TO BOLOBO. 233 rising directly from the river. The place consists of one large stockaded building, at once a residence for the white man, and a citadel of resistance in case of attack, and a series of little habitations clustered round the centre, where the Zanzibaris and the. Krumanos* live. This little station and its tiny garrison were very nearly having to fight for their lives a short time before my arrival. Some relative of King Ibaka’s wishing to get up a little diversion which would redound to his glory, proposed to his followers to loot the station and massacre the whites. Fortunately, when all were preparing for the struggle, King Ibaka intervened, and matters now looked very smooth, the fortifications however remained to show through what .a time of anxiety the station had passed.f There are three Europeans here, Lieut. Orhan, the chief of the station ; and two commercial agents, a Frenchman and a Belgian. Bolobo has one terrible disadvantage. Mosquitoes abound to such an incredible degree that after dark it is torture to have to sit at dinner, for they bite through your trousers and socks—your hands, too, * “ Krumanos,” a Portuguese corruption of Kru man or Kru- boy, is conventionally used on the upper river to indicate the indigenous carriers and servants who work for hire. On the lower river it means “ slaves.” •j* Since I left Bolobo, war actually took place, and the besieged garrison were only relieved by the opportune arrival of Mr. Stanley, who quelled the disturbance without firing a shot.234 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. are soon swollen and poisoned. Consequently all pleasant conversation at Bolobo is impossible after the cloth has been withdrawn ; and you hasten off to bed to put a mosquito-curtain between yourself and your enemies. There was one great and unaccus- tomed treat I enjoyed at 'Bolobo, which, after my long deprivation, seemed to compensate for all other things lacking—plenty of coffee and good goat’s milk. Food generally is scarce, and what there is consists of the same unchanging fowls, goats, and kikwanga. March Qth.-—This morning early, King Ibaka attended by a numerous and distingushed suite, arrived to pay us a visit. After the palaver of ceremony was over I asked permission to take his portrait, which was accorded, but he had not the slightest intention of sitting for it, and moved about at will. At length Orban hit on an excellent ex- pedient for inducing the King to give me. a chance of successfully portraying his features, and at the same time of exhibiting to me a curious native custom. So he proposed to Ibaka a solemn drink- ing bout of malafu. “ Le Boi de Bolobo ” willingly assented, and certain hirelings were told off to go and fetch some large jars of freshly drawn palm- wine. Long, long ago, in the legends of the Ba-yansi,* * This is one of the many local explanations of these curious drinking customs, but it will not suffice to explain them all, nor to account for their wide-spread existence in Western Africa.TO BOLOB6. 235 a King of Bolobo was drinking malafii at his ease one day when a leopard stole np behind him un- awares, jumped on his back, and strangled him before the King could cry for help. To avoid such a catastrophe in future, the following ceremony was instituted by his successor. Before the King is about to drink, he imposes silence on the people assembled by snapping his fingers towards them and crying “Ma” (“ma” is an exclamation to call attention to anything: it is used to dogs). A wife is crouched behind him, a little boy on his left hand. The wife then also calls “ Ma,” and clasps her lord tightly round the stomach with both hands. The little boy covers his face with one hand, and claps the other continually on his extended leg. Then the King, sticking the first finger of his left hand into his throat, below the ear, with the right hand raises the glass and drinks. After he has quenched his thirst he passes his hand across his mouth, and then points with his first finger in the direction where he next intends to levy war. When he has not any quarrel immediately on hand, he simply points his finger upwards; then snaps his finger, says “ Ma” again, and the ceremony is at an end and talking is resumed. All the details of this tiring performance were carefully gone through whilst Ibaka drank the malafu in our presence ,• but I should think the constant repetition of this ritual every time he drinks must be very wearying to the flesh. Orban tells me, however, that on occasions of hurry or236 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CON00. emergency there is a sort of shorter service, when it suffices the King to be in absolute darkness, like a sen- sitive “ negative,” to quench his thirst without going through the more elaborate ceremonies observed on other occasions. Ibaka’s hat is a very remarkable one, as you may see in his portrait. There is literally more in it than meets the eye, for within this capacious receptacle much “ cloth ” and all his most special and private valuables are stored. This ex- traordinary structure,* which is made out of plaited grass, never leaves Ibaka’s head more than once a twelvemonth, “ for our annual cleaning,” and he wears it day and night. “ Uneasy lies the head that wears a crown.” The decorations of Ibaka’s hat are of exotic origin. The lizards are cut out of tinfoil, and manufactured, possibly in Birmingham, and that curious plaque in the centre is the label of the first and only champagne bottle which ever reached Boldbd, and which, was drunk on the birth- day of the King of the Belgians. Ibaka attended the banquet, but declined any champagne, asking, however, for its glittering label. These curious wicker-work, or plaited-grass hats, are common to all the great chiefs in this part of the Upper Congo. The civilization of the natives of Boldbd, who are Ba-yansi people, is of a higher order than is usually met with in savage Africa, and it is certainly purely indigenous. Their houses, arms, and household im- * See frontispiece.TO BOLOBO. 237 plements are constructed with skill and taste, and the people generally exhibit a considerable amount of savoir faire et vivre. They are great traders, and travel many hundred miles up and down the river, engaged in trafficking their ivory, slaves, and smoked fish. In the afternoon, to-day, I went into one of the neighbouring towns, some two miles distant, where I wished to draw a house, for the dwellings here differ HOUSE IN BOLOBO. considerably in design and construction from those further down the river, and to study the way of living of its inhabitants. The natives received me very well, and took great interest in my work ; too much interest, in fact, for certain officious friends, in their anxiety to keep the course clear, showed an ill-judged severity towards the unwitting persons who came between me and my object. They beat a woman, who beat a boy, who threwa stone at some-238 A JOTJBNEY UP TEE BIVER CONGO. body else, and soon there was a general row, in the middle of which I thought it best to retire in case the excitement which was surging amongst them should be turned against the white man who had un- wittingly brought discord into their peaceful village with his sorcerish practices of “ scratching images on white cloth with a piece of stick.” Indeed, had I doubted as to the propriety of retiring to fresh fields and pastures new, my hesitation would not have lasted long, for a friendly young man, who had in a measure constituted himself my guide, took my sketch-book with an apologetic “ Mbote,” closed it gently, and taking me by the hand led me out of the crowd. Fortunately my sketch of the house itself was finished, and I was only obliged to leave incomplete a group of natives in the foreground. I tried to make my retreat seem as little like one as possible, and stopped frequently to play with children and admire the arms and spears of the natives who were closing up behind me. All the same, I felt myself being as politely as possible ejected from the village, and the smiling natives insisted on accom- panying me until I was well out of the precincts of their place, and on the road to the station. After all, I think they behaved very well in not assaulting me. I was alone, unarmed, and completely in their power. It was the first time a white man had ever visited that spot, and then he must needs signalise his visit by doing such uncanny things as making sketches and collecting plants, from either of whichTO BOLOB6. 239 mal-praetices any sensitive negro might have been justified in accusing him of witchcraft, and excused for wishing to break the spell by shedding his blood.' However, shortly after my return to the station King Ibaka arrived, with the most profuse apologies for my ejectment by his subjects ; in fact, he said he felt so bitterly the slight which had been offered to one of his friends, that he could only be assured of the restoration of our former good relations if, just as a form, I wrould give him a present of some blue, cloth. I paid this debt to friendship, but King Ibaka received evasively my request to come and visit him chez lui, although I did afterwards make a sort of formal tour of a little village, being walked round the place by the King himself, but not allowed to stop anywhere and sketch. A few pine-apples are found at Bolobd between the station and the native towns, but the fruit appears to be rare elsewhere in the vicinity, and we are evidently here on the confines of the district over which “ Ananassa sativa ” has spread with such wonderful vigour and rapidity. Another American introduction of a much later date and of decidedly different bearing towards mankind—the horrible little “ jigger ” or burrowing flea—has just reached B&]obo from the coast, though so recently that the natives are only just beginning to be conscious of its presence, and have not yet given it a name. This evening was passed like most others at Bolobd. We held out against the mosquitoes just240 A JOURNEY UP THE RIV,ER CONGO. long enough to eat our dinner, and then hurried off to bed and the relief from these tortures that is only to he found within. SUPPLEMENTARY NOTES ON B<5l()B<5. The people inhabiting the banks of the Congo in this district are, as has already been stated, Ba-yansi, but this race seems limited to little more than a strip of land bordering the river, and does not extend its settlements far from the banks. On the eastern side of the Congo the race of the interior is the Ba~nunu, who seem to live on friendly terms with the Ba-yansi. At Boldbd there is no local fetish-man or doctor, and the people there have to depend on the Ba-nunu to supply one when necessary. This personage is required for many purposes—to perform certain rites and ceremonies such as circumcision, to heal sicknesses, and to decide legal disputes or judge criminals. The fetish-man’s decisions on all knotty points of law, and his general perspicacity in judicial investigations, are much thought of among the Ba-yansi. When the Mu-nunu is called upon to ex- amine into some case of theft or crime, he subjects the implicated persons to a most rigorous question- ing before arriving at a discision. The “ costs ” exacted by this gentleman are tremendous, and act effectively as a prevention against undue litigious- ness on the part of natives.TO BOLOBO, 241 Ibaka, the paramount chief of Bolobo, is one of the few potentates of the Western Congo that can be said, in any way to be a ruler or kinglet of importance. His sovereignty is hereditary, and his family is considered royal even in its collateral branches. He rules over a thickly inhabited strip of the river about seventy miles in length, of uncer- tain width, and with a population of from forty to fifty thousand. Beyond his own subjects, however, his influence is widely felt throughout the Ba-yansi tribes, and he occupies perhaps the same position towards that people as Mpumo Ntaba, the successor of Makoko, does towards the Ba-teke. The country in the vicinity of Bolobo is a low table-land covered with dense forest. We are here in the central basin of Africa, through which the course of the Upper Congo lies, and the forests owe much of their luxuriance to the abundant rain-fall and to the short duration of the dry season. Owing to the dense population and the prevalence of cultivated districts even in the forest, many wild animals seem to shun this country; still there are large herds of elephants and buffaloes which are little interfered with by the natives, whose sporting proclivities are not very strong, and whose ivory is all received from tribes further up the river, and not procured from the herds of proboscideans which range these forests. In the same way,, although the red buffalo’s skulls and horns may be constantly seen in the villages, I never heard of the people taking R242 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. the trouble to hunt it; they seem rather to content themselves with gathering these relics whenever they meet with them, doubtless after the feast of some lion or leopard, and depositing them among the half-sacred curiosities of their villages.* The lion, leopard, striped -hyaena, black-backed jackal, and civet cat are known here, and the gorilla, or some kindred anthropoid ape, is described by the natives as inhabiting the northern or western bank of the Congo. The red river-hog,f which the natives call by the same name as their domestic pig —ISTgulu-—is very common, and although often killed and eaten by the natives, does not seem to shun their villages. I even have reason to believe that in parts it lives in the same half-domesticated state as noticed by Schweinfurth among the Nyam-nyams. Iron seems to be largely worked in the interior, and the Ba-yansi of Boldbd shape it into many beauti- ful knives, axes, and spear heads. Copper they also possess, largely, but I cannot say whether it is locally found and melted. The natives speak of a kind of topaz which they call “ Monkoli.” It is described as either pale blue or yellow in colour, and abundantly found in the interior of the country. * In Ki-yansi, the name for buffalo is ng'ombu, a classic term in most Bantu tongues for “ox.” The Ba-yansi have no domestic cattle. | Potamocheerus.CHAPTER X MSUATA. Return from Bolobo—Itimba—A Burial Scene—A Village DECORATED WITH SKULLS — EUPHORBIAS — MbONGO AGAIN- Mukemo—The Outlet of the Lawson—Join Lieutenant Janssen—Life at Msuata—The Haunt of the Elephant— Tee Blue Plantain Eater—Birds and Crocodiles—The Clouds—The Storm—A Visit to Gobila—Makole under Treatment—A Trap for the Leopard—His Death.Euphorbia Her men ti ana CHAPTER X. M STJAT A. I left Bdldbo, after a few days’ stay, to return to Msuata, the station near the confluence of the Wabuma-Kwango river. I had hoped to pursue my journey farther up the Congo, but with the paucity of men at my disposal and the somewhat turbulent character of the natives, I thought it better not to do so, just at that time, fearing to throw diffi- culties in Mr. Stanley’s path, should I involve myself246 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. in an altercation with the natives, when he was trusting that everything would go smoothly, with time, patience, and a pacific bearing towards these impulsive Congo tribes. I had intended, however, to spend some two months at Bdlobo, and use it as a centre for collecting and making observations on anthropology ; but various considerations impelled me to prefer Msuata for these ends, especiallj7 as that spot, from its position, is just at the meeting-place of three interesting races, the Ba-yansi, the Ba-teke, and the Wa-buma, while at Bdlobo you have merely Ba-yansi. Then also, at Bdlobo the food supply was scanty and variable, whereas at Msuata the commissariat was more skil- fully managed; and finally—and perhaps this was the reason that most affected my choice—the mos- quitoes at Bdlobo rendered life unbearable, and Msuata, happy place, was exempt from this plague. So I finally decided to return in the boat which had brought me, and which was making its way back to Stanley Pool. Lieut. Orban, the late chief of Bdlobo station, wras my travelling companion as far as I went, and our short journey together of three days to Msuata—we took just half the' time descending the river that we had taken to ascend—proved most agreeable, and amusing. On the first evening after leaving Bdlobo we stopped at a village called Itimba, a little below Chumbiri’s town near the point where the Congo begins to narrow down from a breadth of nine or tenMS UAT A. 247 miles to a few hundred yards. Here, at Itimba, we found the people just about to proceed to the obsequies of a dead fellowr-townsman, an old man, apparently of some standing. The chief and his subjects were in great perplexity. Of late years it has become 44 de rigueur,” since guns were introduced into the Upper Congo regions, to fire a salute over the body of a defunct person, especially if he be of any distinc- tion ; and the inhabitants of this village, possessing only one pitiful old flintlock amongst them, and that terribly out of repair, were hesitating, when we arrived, as to what course they should pursue — whether they should charge and fire this one dilapi- dated gun and, risk its bursting, or whether the deceased should be allowed to wend his way to the land of spirits unhonoured and unsaluted. Seeing their perplexity, Lieutenant Orban volunteered to fire a round of twenty cartridges from his 64 Win- chester.” The chief and people were delighted. Could there be greater honour for the deceased than to receive his farewell salute at the hands of a white man, with his wonderful gun from Mputo—the mysterious region beyond the sea—the unknown— perhaps heaven itself ? (“ for are not these white men sons of heaven ? ”) So thought the old chief, as he led us to see the corpse, with an earnest, pleading tone, he took our hands in his, and said, 44 Oh you, who are going home! ”—and he pointed to the pale and peaceful evening sky—44 you will send him back to us, will you not ? you will tell him his hut is248 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. waiting for him, his wives will prepare his manioc white as cotton-cloth, and there shall be nialafu in plenty, and a goat hilled. You will send him back will you not?” This expression of feeling quite took us by surprise. Ordinarily the African chief is so stolid, so thoroughly material, that one never expects from him anything like sentiment or poeti- cal ideas. We tried as gently as possible—for he appealed to both of us in his distress—to explain at once our utter inability to reanimate this hideous corpse with the breath of life, and to encourage him with vague hopes that all was not in vain, but he shook his grizzled head sadly at the confession of our powerlessness face to face with death. The body of the dead man had been previously smoked and dried over a slow fire, so that the flesh, except upon the hands, was shrunken and reduced to a leathery covering round the gaunt bones. The face had been gaudily painted with scarlet, yellow and white pigments, and the whole body was en- crusted with the red dye of the camwood tree. Round the nose and mouth was wrapped a band of cloth, and gay-patterned cottons swathed the body. For some reason the hands were quite plump and well covered with flesh, as if in life. The dead man had been placed in his grave in a sitting posture, many layers of native cloth lying under him, and ready to cover him up on the top were piles of cotton stuffs received in trade from the far-off coast, and representing to these natives a considerable amountMSUATA. 249 of wealth. In the vague, half-determined notions which the people here have conceived as to a future existence, everything in the Spirit World is supposed to he a pale copy of things existing on the earth, so that for this reason they put cloth, vessels of pottery, and, in the case of a chief, dead slaves into the graves, in order that the deceased, on arriving in the land of shades, may not appear unprovided with the necessary means of making a fresh start in a new life. The grave in which this man was buried had been dug in a hut, and the head of the corpse was not more than two feet below the surface. We could not ascertain whether the hut, or rather house—for it was a substantial building of poles and thatch—- would be abandoned or not. I fancy not, as it is only in the case of a chief that this is done ; and the man that was dead, although he died rich and influen- tial, was, after all, only the favourite slave of the chief. In this village many skulls were stuck on the top of the houses. They were those of mis-doers, we were told, who had been slain by the fetish-man for their crimes, and their skulls were thus exposed for the admonition of others. If this was' the sole ex- planation of an epidemic of cranial adornment which seemed to have broken out all over the village, on every house, then there must have been a correspond- ing epidemic of crime amongst the inhabitants ; but I think there were other causes, such as recent wars250 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. which would help to account for these grim appur- tenances to house decoration. One man, indeed, admitted to me that the two skulls he possessed were those of two slaves whose throats he had cut for some grievous offence on their part. Out of mere fun, we asked if they would sell us some of these crania, knowing the horror that these people have of parting with any human remains, and expecting a decided refusal. To our surprise, how- over, they immediately asked a certain price, which was afterwards reduced to three brass rods for each skull, at which rate two were soon bought, and more might probably have been procured if we had cared to stop and bargain, for now that the people found their osteological collections of any value they hastened to realise them, and brought us, besides skulls, all manner of odds and ends of bones, few of which, however, were of any value. Many would have jumped to the conclusion that we were here in some cannibal country, merely because of the abun- dance of human remains in this village, but I do not think there is the slightest foundation for such an accusation. In many villages—in fact in nearly all the villages hereabouts—there are bones of animals or men stuck about under the trees or in the fetish huts for various complicated reasons of religion, of* boastfulness, and perhaps also fear—fear of the avenging manes of the departed who might wreak vengeance on his slayers, did they not hold his bones as a security for good behaviour. When weM8UATA. 251 got on terms of intimacy with the natives of Itimba —it takes a very short time to win the confidence of these simple people—I asked some of them confi- dentially if they ever eat man, proffering the inquiry with assumed carelessness, so that if they might feel any false shame in admitting this addition to their diet, they would be reassured by my freedom from prejudice, and confess. At first, however, they did not clearly understand me, but when, by more vigorous pantomime and better chosen terms, I had made my meaning plainer, they repelled the sugges- tion with the utmost horror, replying to my interro- gation an emphatic 6i Ve, vi, ve,” (“ No, no, no, ”), and then adding a timid inquiry, 66 Na Baio ? ” (“ And you ? do you ? ”) Ere this excitement about the skulls was over, fresh objects of interest arrived in the shape of some splendid fish that had just been caught. We bought the lot, and I sat down by candle light to make a drawing of the biggest. He measured 3 ft. 7 in. in length, and a fuller description of him will be found in Chapter XIII. Round this village, Itimba, there were many fine clumps of Euphorbia growing, probably Euphorbia Hermentiana, apparently protected and encouraged #by the inhabitants, who appear to have some supersti- tious, or perhaps practical liking for these curious prickly plants. It is strange that although these Euphorbias are found in nearly all West African villages, they should yet, as far as I have noticed, be252 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. absent from tbe wild uncultivated country. Can they be a semi-domesticated species that is carried from village to village, either from some superstitious preference, or to form protective hedges, or because they furnish some useful product, such as a poisonous juice, or a fibrous matter ? The next morning we stopped at that pleasant little village called Mbongo, where I had been before so well received. The people greeted me quite THE SHOKE AT MUKEMO. enthusiastically, and although there was no malafu, they brought sugar-cane in abundance. I obtained here a curious little river tortoise, a species of Trionyx provided with a soft and flexible shell and a quaint little proboscis. We camped out for the night at a village of Ba-yansi, called Mukemo, or “ the Little,” though it must have evidently changed since its name was first given, for it was large, spacious and populous.M8UATA. 253 The houses were well built, and the open squares clean and swept, and garnished with handsome trees. The people were in the best of tempers, for a drinking-bout of malafu had just taken place, and though the chief was nearly dead drunk, his subjects had merely taken sufficient to raise their spirits and set their tongues going. They led us up to the place where the chief and his principal men were sitting on mats, with jars of palm wine round them, and slaves serving it out into a cracked tumbler and a battered tin. We were obliged to drink two glasses each as a testimony of good-will. I say “ obliged,” though the obligation was by no means unpleasant, for the malafu, made from the sap of the Hyphcene palm, was most delicious and refreshing, and, moreover, as strong as good beer. The chief here possessed a cat, which was regarded somewhat as a curiosity by the natives. It was the first I had ever seen in a Ba-yansi village, although I believe this local scarcity was merely accidental, for the domestic cat is fairly abundant in West Africa, Many of the children in this place were suffering from whooping cough, and during the night made much disturbance with their screaming coughs and fretful cries. The next day we passed the tortuous outlet—much blocked by sand-banks—of the Lawson or Alima* river, on the western bank of the Congo, and then * It was down this river that De Brazza came when he journeyed from the Upper Ogowe to the Congo.254 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. came in view of the great Wabuma, finally passing the point of G-anchu, and its dangerous current, and arriving at Msuata towards noon. Here Janssen gave us his usual hearty welcome and good cheer, and here I proceeded to settle down with my three Zanzibaris into comfortable quarters, looking for- ward to a long rest after my tiring journeys. Orban bade us farewell at Msuata. He was going on in the boat to Stanley Pool, and intended to regain the coast in order to recruit his health. Msuata has many advantages as a centre of study, as a place to spend a few months of research in Natural History subjects. It is very healthy, well provided with good native food—eighty fowls can, if necessary, be bought in one day from the surrounding villages— the scenery in the environs is pretty and accessible, while the kindly natives leave nothing to desire either for amiability or gentle demeanour. Life was pleasantly monotonous, but although the programme of my day was almost unvarying in its arrangement, the details of each branch of study offered continual novelty and change, and, in the same sense that “ happy are the people who have no history,” so, although no wonderful adventures or marvellous occurrences happened to me here, I yet look back on these six weeks passed at Msuata as the very happiest time I have known in Africa. “ Les jours secoulent et se ressemblent,” and the detailed description of the way one day was spent at this station will serve as a history of the remainingMSUATA. 255 forty one, with the few rare or exceptional incidents inserted. My daily life begins at about half-past five, when I become dimly conscious that the curtain covering the doorway of my room is no longer opaque, hut that a cold bright light is filtering through. Then I notice the strange silence : the crickets have sud- denly ceased their exasperating “ creek, creek creek ” which has been going on all night, and there is a slight pause in nature between the noises of darkness and light. The silence does not last long, for the turtle-doves begin to coo in the adjoining woods, and a flock of grey parrots passes over my roof with loud whistles and gay chuckles of merriment. A shrill chorus of twittering weaver-birds and wax-bills arises from the grass fields, the cuckoos laugh from tree to tree, and up from the river comes the metallic cry of the spur-winged plovers. It is day, and a thin streak of sunshine steals in through the gap between the curtain and the door-post, and cuts right across my mosquito curtain like a golden sword. I hesitate no longer; the sloth of night has passed, and I impatiently long for freshness and eager work. Lifting off the muslin which has secured me immunity all night from mosquito bites, I somewhat ungratefully fling it into a corner, and pulling aside the curtain which has veiled my door- less doorway, I step out into the fresh, even chilly morning air, and call loudly “ Faraji we ! ” Faraji, who is just winding his turban round his head and256 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. putting on his slight raiment after the river bath which has left him glistening, comes with docile haste to my roonr, and helps me to perform my hasty toilet. Then the curtain is looped up over the wide doorway, and the yellow sunlight fills the room, and shows up all sorts of queer creatures that have been my near companions in the night. Large blue- black velvety spiders are revealed on the clay wall, a pretty lizard darts under the bed, while all around on the matted floor, on the walls, on the boxes are seated the odious grylli, the crickets whose chirping has so wearied and annoyed me in the hours of wakefulness. However I leave Faraji to disperse and slay these creatures—always excepting the lizard, who is quite unobjectionable, and the spider, who eats so many flies—and I go to the breakfast table in the next room—our salle a manger—to await the arrival of my host, Janssen. Suddenly he comes in, not from his bedroom but from the outer piazza. There is rage in his face mingled with a fierce longing for vengeance. I divine the truth—Another leopard has been whilst we slumbered, and another milch goat is robbed from the fold—No, it is worse, three of our four milk-providers have been strangled, and the fourth is going about bleeding at the neck and baaing piteously. This is indeed a disaster, but after all it has occurred several times before, so we sit down to our breakfast and discuss with resigna- tion the best mode of setting a trap for the depre- dator. When the meal is finished, Janssen goes toMSUATA. 257 review the men and settle the routine of work for the day, and I, with Faraji, Mafta, and Imbono, start for a morning’s ramble in the river-side forest. Perhaps for that end I cross the Congo, for on the northern bank the country is almost an uninhabited wilder- ness, wholly given up to nature in parts. We go, then, to the clayey shore, below the station, and loose from its moorings, a native canoe, a “ dug-out, ” per- haps fifteen feet in length and three feet in its greatest width. But before embarking the sky is carefully scanned to ascertain the probable state of the weather for the next few hours, for should a storm be threatening it would be madness to adven- ture ourselves on the river. If the verdict be “ set fair,” we enter the canoe, the men take the paddles, and the wobbly craft, with a disagreeable rocking motion from side to side, that brings either edge in turn on a level with the water, proceeds to make way laboriously up-stream. We coast along past the landing-place of the village of Msuata, or Grobila as it is sometimes called, after its chief, where all the natives’ canoes are drawn up on the beach or fastened to piles rising out of the water, and where many little children are playing the innocent, imaginative games common to all childkind, while a few of their elders are fishing or making ready to set out on a journey; past the banana groves skirting the groups of yellow- thatched houses, then along the great river-fronting wall of forest, where the sprawling, untidy calamus palms clamber up over the noble eriodendron trees, s258 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. untidy and irregular in their means of ascent, but endowed with an indefatigable ambition to be at the top of everything. Then we reach a certain dead tree lying prone on the shore, with its leafless branches stretching upwards almost pathetically, crowned with small water-birds, and here, turning at this land-mark, we proceed to strike away across the Congo for a little cove or inlet nearly opposite Msuata. Owing to the force of the current we have to row a mile and a half up-stream to be able to land at the place desired, and allow for the “inevitable descent of the canoe. When we leave the shore to cross as rapidly as may be the broad Congo, it is always a time of some anxiety. Before we are out of the shallows a hippopotamus may come and wreck us, or once in the terrible mid-current, where the waves are leaping over each other, a wind storm may suddenly capsize our unstable bark. However, the further shore comes nearer and nearer, and we at length enter the quiet little bay for which we have steered, where there is a placid backwater shielded by a spit of forest. Here the canoe is tied to a fallen tree, and the tent is put up on the beach to protect the heavier baggage, and our batterie de cuisine from the sun, whilst we, leaving Mafta behind to com- mence preparations for the mid-day meal, with eager haste on my part leave the open beach of white sand, and following an elephant path, plunge into the cool forest. In England I am a fire-worshipper; in the tropicsM8UATA. 259 I adore the trees. My heart goes out to the erring (?) Jews of old who “ built them high places and images and groves, on every high hill and under every green tree,” and who, in spite of occasional icono- clastic or “ dendroclastic ” rulers who arose and cut down the groves, relapsed repeatedly from their harsher, sterner, desert faith—the faith of Job and the modern Bedouin—into the softer cult of towering, shade-giving trees. The Forest is most to be appreciated in the Lands of the Sun, where its cool green gloom contrasts so soothingly with the hard, white heat in the open. So we follow the elephant’s track with careful steps and slow, avoiding crackling twigs and thorny branches and ant-infested shrubs. The less noise we make in this arcana of wild things, the more shall we see of its higher life. Sh !—listen, what was that ? A series of crashes in the forest follow my query, then a rustling of leaves. Faraji pulls me by the sleeve and whispers, “ Tembo, bwrana, tembo.” Then in the direction in which he points I see through the stems and the creeper-stalks a grey mass. It is an elephant, who, whether he hears us or no, calmly goes on feeding. We somewhat tremblingly continue on our road amid the noise of creaking, breaking boughs and swishing leaves, quite resolved to leave the elephant alone; for of what avail would my little bird-gun be against his hide or bony skull ? Here the path becomes pitted with great round water-holes where the elephant’s feet have sunk into the soft soil and the rain has s 2260 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. filled the depressions. Already these pools of a day swarm with life. Little striped toads squat on their margins, myriads of glancing water-beetles and water-spiders skim the surface, and in the muddy depths there seem to be many wriggling indefinite creatures. Another warning pull from Faraji. I look up above my head and see a dark blot in the maze of twigs. It is some big bird, so I fire my little “collector’s” gun and down it comes with many a flop and a temporary stoppage in the forks of branches, until it falls an inanimate lump in the herbage at my feet. It is a great prize—the beautiful Blue Plantain-eater,* a bird remarkable for lovely plumage and high comestible qualities. Follow- ing the report of the gun, is a momentary panic among the denizens of the woods. The elephant is heard retreating through the forest alleys, many birds call loudly and indignantly from their unseen posts of vantage-—the fishing-eagles giving vent to almost hysterical screams and the cuckoos cynically laughing —and for a while the spell of peace is rudely broken. But crimes are soon buried and forgotten in the forest, and everything after the momentary pause of surprised attention goes on feeding, fighting, or making love. Slowly we traverse this belt of woodland until we have crossed the little peninsula that divides us from our landing place. Now we emerge quietly on a * Schizorhis gigantea; for illustration of head and crest, see chapter xiv.LANDSCAPE ON THE UPPER CONGOMSUATA. 263 tiny bay or sound between two promontories that end in a green, grassy headland. Here is a study to make which repeats itself throughout the Congo scenery. A line of forest reflected in the still water, an old, gnarled, and withered tree-trunk in the fore- ground, half in the ooze, half high and dry above, on the white sand. If yon do not approach too near, you may see the crocodiles lying under the boughs of the fallen tree, their mouths gaping open from sheer listlessness, and their bodies motionless in the warm shallow water, or basking and baking in the open sunlight, the whole creature revelling in the pleasure of dolce far niente. Then above, about, and around them, a multitude of lovely forms, water-birds and waders standing fearlessly pluming themselves regardless of the crocodiles, with whom they must make a compact, a mutual • alliance. The crocodiles agree not to eat the birds, and the birds keep a good look out to warn the crocodiles by loud cries when their only enemy, man, is coming. I have observed this strange intimacy between these very dissimilar creatures on all African rivers. How the advent of man must have re-acted on the relations between many of the higher forms of vertebrate life, compelling them almost to subordinate their own pre-existing fears, quarrels and rapacities to the common dread of the universal enemy! Whom could the crocodiles have feared before this ab- normal ape took to slaying instead of being slain ? From the day that the first Protanthropos flung a264 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. stone at, or jabbed a sharp reed into a crocodile’s eye, this strange intimacy for mutual defence must have sprung up between the crocodile and the shore- frequenting birds* So, on the withered tree-trunk, and on the many twisted snaggs that rise above the water, perch the egrets, the bitterns, the herons, and the darters. Fat pelicans lounge on the oozy margin of the river’s wavelets, spur-winged and Egyptian geese stand in little groups on the sand, and Zikzak plovers, with yellow wattles and spurs to their wings, hop on the crocodiles’ bodies, and, if they do not, as some suppose, pick the teeth, they at any rate linger strangely, and, as one would think, rashly, round the jaws of the grim saurians. Ah ! Faraji, you have broken the spell! Startled by a sudden inroad of black ants over his unprotected skin, he has loudly smacked a limb that has been smartly bitten by the great mandibles of these head- strong insects. The charm has vanished, the picture is dispersed. The egrets and the herons are flying to far-off shores, the pelicans flop into the water, and thence scutter away, half swimming, half flying, till they are out of sight, while the outraged plovers, with their loud, almost human cry, wake up the croco- diles, and, having seen their friends glide smoothly into the deep, they address a few more invectives to our party, and then flap their black-and-white wings over the water to a point further along the shore, where they fold their attractive pinions under modest grey wing-coverts, and strut about the beachMSUATA. 265 in self-satisfied conceit at having baulked the slaughterous propensities of those odious men. How- ever, the surroundings of this bird and crocodile grouping still remain, and are worth studying in themselves. There is the fallen tree in the fore- ground, in sharply contrasted light and dark, and beneath it the yellow sand and green ooze. Then the stretch of tranquil water, reflecting first the variegated sky with its cloud effects of iron-grey and snowy white dappled Avith patches of bright blue—the tone of the red sandy bottom shining warmly through this reflection in the shallows—and beyond, the glassy reproduction of the wall of forest in the middle distance, which but for the occasional scratches of silvery white where the light breeze ruffles the water, Avould seem as real as the reality above it. In the actual forest, although it is separated from you by a few hundred yards of river, much detail may be observed in the clear noon-day sun- light. There are the purple depths of shade and the gloAving masses of yellow-green foliage ; there are the white skeletons of dead and leafless trees and the fanciful trellis-work of emerald-green calamus palms, trailing their disorderly fronds over the water’s edge and curving their prying, impertinent heads into every gulf of vegetation, and peeping over the tops of the highest trees. Beyond the forest, the back- ground is the sky, and what a heaven it is to gaze at! In Africa, during the rainy season, the cloud- scapes are pictures in themselves. Those noble266 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. masses of vapour which begin in tiny shapes of blue- grey over the sharp horizon of the Congo, gradually lift themselves up, throw out wings and limbs, and while their dark bellies stretch away in exaggerated perspective till they vanish into haze, their great snowy heads and shining arms expand over the heavens as if they would, in their rapacity, conquer and swallow all the cerulean blue. Then in their moments of proudest development they break up like unwieldy empires. One province after another deserts and floats away into independence, and the one great cloud that erewhile occupied three-quarters of the sky gives birth to many cloudlets, each with a dark grey body and a white border, and these in their divisions and separations let the sunlight pierce their ranks through and through with many darts and broad-swords of gold, and thus, thoroughly disorgan- ized and disunited, the cloud titans are swept from off the blue heavens by their fickle friend, the wind, and for a while the sky is empty and serene. But not for long: as I am eating my lunch under the shade of the palm groves, the air becomes stifling; over the water is a shimmering reverberation of heat, the crocodiles on the distant banks positively gasp for breath with expanded jaws, the flies forget to bite, the birds and the insects cease their chirping—there is an awful silence. Something is going to happen, and everything animate, is conscious of the suspense and the impending struggle. Faraji comes to my retreat, and, pointing to the line of open water whereMSTJATA. 267 the Congo meets the sky, his finger indicates a faint purplish nehula or haze which is shapeless and yet has limits to its small extent. It is the avant garde of an awful army, the real trained hosts of the storm-fiend, who in his struggle for the empire of the sky now puts forth his utmost strength. The former clouds were but a light skirmishing force in comparison, and the Zanzibaris, my weather guides, paid no attention to their movements, but now they all come to me, although the sky is a hard, unsullied blue, save for the purplish stain near the eastern horizon, and say with emphasis, “ Rain is coming.” Fearing to be cut off from Msuata by the approach- ing storm for the remaining hours of daylight, and perhaps have to pass a night in the damp and drip- ping woods, our one thought is to take advantage of a brief spell of immunity and cross the Congo before the elements can hinder our progress. So the sketching materials are hastily put together, the tent is taken down and rolled up, the remainder of the lunch is left to the ants and birds, and rapidly unmooring the canoe, we paddle out from our little tranquil harbour into the open Congo. How the storm grows ! In five minutes the haze has become a black, densely packed ridge of clouds along the horizon. The extreme edge of the water tells out against the dark cloud-bank in ominous white : still there is time. We paddle with feverish energy— yes, we, for I, too, strive to increase the speed with268 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. measured strokes. Shall we never cross the mile- wide stream ? See, the artillery is beginning. It flashes and blazes fitfully in the far distance. As yet all is still. We see the lightning but do not hear the thunder. The water is like solid glass ; to our right it is still smilingly, vacuously blue, but storm-wards, it has become a sullen grey, ever deepening in tint. Ah, there is the thunder, beginning in a low muttering with occasional isolated pops and reports like single shots. A third of the sky is now filled with a pall of uniformly black-grey cloud, quite unbroken save by one small, whitish fleck that to a fanciful eye might seem a general on a white horse directing the movements of the vast compact hosts. The edge of the storm-cloud is torn, irregular, harried, and is fast stretching with disordered outline, over our heads. Now comes a splendid coruscation, a dazzling blaze of lightning over the face of the cloud, followed by a perfect roar of thunder that makes us uncon- sciously tremble. The hour of danger is fast approaching, but, save for the steady advance of the storm, nothing moves in nature. The water is unruffled, the foliage of the nearer shore is unstirred by any breath of air. We have done three-quarters of the journey, can we accomplish the rest unharmed ? Ah, no ! too late— the Wind is coming, and Faraji, catching sight of the distant waves, says under his breath, u Oh Mu- hammad, Oh Prophet of God, save us.” It is onMS UAT A. 269 us, it is here ! The men lie down cowering in the boat that they may offer no resistance to the fearful blast which all but overturns the canoe, and hurls on to us the white-capped waves which leap one over the other in their anxiety to swamp us. Still, from their crouching posture the men dig the paddles into the water, and seem to carve a way to the fast-approach- ing shore, aided somewhat by the wind which is sweeping us thither. Shall we escape ? It seems unlikely. A great hissing wall of rain advances towards us over the river, envelopes, surrounds and well-nigh overwhelms us. I feel crushed by the mass of water, my breath is gone, I am beaten into the trough of the canoe where the men lie ex- hausted, without other feelings than stolid resigna- tion. I can distinguish nothing in the blinding rain, but I think I hear a despairing voice quite close. Suddenly we bump on a log and find ourselves stranded on the shore, driven thither by the wind, and at last in safety. The men jump out with expres- sions of devout thankfulness to their prophet, and Janssen is clutching me by the hand to drag me up the slimy bank, full of congratulations at our escape. All is well that ends well. In Africa dangers incurred are soon forgotten. When I have changed my clothes and had some hot coffee, I feel nothing’ more disagreeable than a glow from the dousing of cold rain, and almost forget that half an hour ago I thought myself doomed to feed the crocodiles of the270 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. Congo. As I am sipping my coffee, too, and chat- ting with Janssen about the leopard of last night and the means of shooting him, I notice in the glimpses of sky that are framed by the windows indications of approaching peace. The storm-fiend, raised by the sun, is conquered by that luminary, and his ragged battalions, torn and rent, are being driven off by the changeable wind, a fickle co- adjutor that ever turns against you in the hour of defeat. Soon there is calm. The sun glancing radiantly in the rain-pools, lights up a somewhat tearful scene, and the ground is strewn with leaves, branches, debris of the forest carried hither and thither by the wind. The later afternoon is mellow and fine. There is a delicious freshness in the air, the sky is a pale washed-out blue, and the descending sun brings out all the forest background in exaggerated relief. We put on our thick boots and set off on a walk to the village. The path is not only marshy in parts, but even crosses positive lagoons, through which the Zanzibaris carry us on their backs. This watery condition of the route is owing to the recent heavy rainfall. As we enter the village and the first few people catch sight of us, the whole popula- tion is soon around us, shrieking out a welcome, “ Susu Mpernbe wa Bui; ”* they scream, announcing * The “ white fowl” and the “ spider,” the native names of Janssen and myself. Janssen was called the “ white fowl,” for some obscure reason, and I was nicknamed the “ spider,” “ be- cause I was always catching insects.”MSUATA. 271 us to their chief, Gobila, who is seated in front of his house, in a little private square, picking over the remains of an old flint-lock gun. Gobila greets us with many grins and Mbote's, and extends a fat paw to be shaken. He is a man of about forty, but looks older. His figure was once fine and stalwart, but latterly, owing to a more slothful existence and good living, he has become too fat. His face is not un- handsome. He has good clear eyes, a straightish nose, perfect teeth, save for the artificial chipping of the two middle incisors, a slight moustache and a peaked beard. His bull-neck is a column of strength, but there are wrinkles of fat in the nape. His arms are immense and tempt you to pinch them, a pleasantry which makes him—for he is of a sunny nature—roar with laughter. Gobila has almost pendant breasts like a woman, a thing constantly seen in these middle-aged men, and his thighs are somewhat misshapen with obesity. But for this full habit of body he appears a stately man, and in spite of his love of joking has a certain dignity of manner. Gobila does not like me very much—not half as much as Janssen. He can’t understand why I am always asking questions, why my black “ stick ” is always making marks on pieces of “ cloth ” (writing), why I gather herbs (unless for magic), and why I am anxious to take his portrait. This latter attempt has been a great source of contention between us. When I first visited the chief of Msuata, I took advantage of the impression produced by my “ present ” to272 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. extract from him an unwilling promise to sit to me as a model. I arrived on the succeeding- day with all my implements of magic, and poor, fat, trembling Gobila had to sit in immobility before me on a square of matting. The constant lifting of my eye from the paper and the wayT I scanned bis features so disconcerted him, that after the first few minutes of the sitting he became quite miserable and implored a momentary release. Then he got two of his wives to sit on either side of him and mitigate by absorption the effect of my evil eye. Thus flanked he sat out bravely a whole half-hour but ever averted his head from my gaze, in such fashion that after many futile attempts to reproduce bis features, I gave up tbe attempt in despair. Gobila was radiant at my defeat. His fetish was stronger than tbe white man’s. Nevertheless he shirked any other contest of our psychic forces, and I never persuaded him to give me another chance. However on this occasion we avoid any such disagreeable subject. The note-book is kept in hiding, and we attempt to draw Gobila out in a most innocent manner. Lest my queries should arouse his suspicions, Janssen is primed with the necessary questions to be put. Gobila is asking about guns— a good idea—Janssen carelessly inquires how long is it since the Ba-teke have known this weapon. The chief replies, after stopping a moment to think, that his father fought with bows and arrows and spears, and knew not guns, which were only intro-MSUATA. 273 duced towards the close of his life, when Grobila was a little boy.* “ Can he ever remember to have heard speak of the time when there were no pine-apples, oranges, maize, manioc or sugar-cane ? ” “ No ; were not those things always with us ? ” he replies inquir- ingly. Grobila answers several more questions and then begins to yawn, so we take the hint and leave him, going off to make a round of visits in the village. A friend of ours, Makole, whose name is phone- tically the same as our great English historian’s, sends word to say he is ill, will we come and see him ? Approaching his residence, we see that something very special is taking place. The pali- saded compound round Makole s huts is festooned with great palm branches, interlaced at times so as to form arches of greenery across the pathway. The entrance to the principal house, where the ceremony we have been invited to see is going on, is a * Gobila is not tbe real name of the present chief of Msuata. It is the name of an elder brother who was formerly chief, but who suffered from occasional fits of madness, or melancholia, in which he cut off too many of his liege’s heads. Consequently he was quitted by almost the entirety of his people and slaves, who crossed the Congo under the leadership of Gampama (the pre- sent Gobila) and established themselves at Msuata. Gampama- Gobila is also called “ Mbuma ” by the Ba-yansi, either because he lives near the Wa-buma people, or because he is originally of that race. 44 Gampama ” is Ki-buma for cat. The real original Gobila still lives on in his ancient seat, 44 thinning ” the few subjects that remain, and becoming a bye-word for ferocity, and a bogy to frighten naughty black children. T274 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. veritable bower, so thickly do the upright palm fronds cluster about it. Thirty-nine people are crammed into the interior, which is about twenty- feet by ten. They are all playing on drums, “ marimbas,” and a rude sort of lyre, and singing at the top of their voices, their nearly naked bodies streaming with sweat, for in addition to the exhausting nature of their occupation there is a roasting fire burning in the centre of the hut, and its smoke mixes with the steam from the human bodies and produces a thick mist through which various details of the interior can but dimly be discerned. At one end of the hut, however, we can see Makole, who is sick, seated under an overarching canopy of palm branches, with the soles of his feet turned towards the blaze. On one side of him a wife crouches over a dish of food that she is preparing. All this time her husband, a stout, well-made man in the prime of life, remains perfectly motionless and silent, the perspiration streaming down his body, and we are informed that it is an important condi- tion of the cure that he should not give utterance to a sound while the charm is working. At length there is a pause for refreshments, and all the occupiers of the hut, musicians, wives, and patient, turn out into the open, panting, laughing, and tviping the sweat from their glistening bodies. Jars of sweet and pleasant-tasting palm wine from the Malehu, or Hyphoene palms, is brought in by slaves, and all present, including ourselves, take aMSUATA. 275 drink, Makole participating freely. Although he is bound to keep silent, he makes uf) for want of verbal welcome by the most effusive grins : in fact his face is wreathed in fatuous smiles, for he is evidently highly self-conscious, and imagines himself to be an interesting figure to the white men who have come to witness his “ cure.” His friends tell us he is suffer- ing from headache, and to corroborate this, he him- self points to his temples and forehead, which are painted with white pigment. But probably the whole affair is got up to serve as an excuse Tor a bout of malafii drinking and a grand function. We return to the station by canoe, going down stream merrily and at a great rate. The sun is very near setting as we arrive, so Janssen goes off to the goat’s paddock to set a trap for the leopard in the little time of remaining day- light. He arranges a sort of narrow “ boma,” or three-sided structure of high stakes, at the end of which a bleating kid is tied to the triggers of three loaded guns, which are so placed that they command the only exit from the trap. The leopard, in the act of seizing the kid, will discharge the contents of the muskets into his body, and ought to die then and there from the effect.* Whilst ^Janssen is doing this, I am watching the sunset from the verandah. * On this occasion the creature did receive the whole charge of the three guns, "but nevertheless afterwards managed, though riddled with bullets, to leap the ten-foot-high fence with kid, guns, and all, and drag itself to die in an adjoining field. T 2276 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. It is a beautiful scene, and one that makes me indig- nantly contradict certain writers who maintain that the tropics, both in flower-shows and fine sunsets, are inferior to the temperate zones. ■ To-day the sun’s career has been somewhat troubled, like that of many an earthly monarch. His rule at first was tranquil and undisputed. Then came the fearful mid-day battles and convulsions, terminating in victory for the luminary, who throughout the afternoon of his reign ruled in peace. Now, as he declines, his enemies revive, and his sinking is marked with bloody, troublous signs in tbe west. The twilight that succeeds his immolation is some half-hour in length,* and the sky slowly changes from fiery red to orange and pale green. The ex- panse of river sympathetically follows these dying changes, and the whole scene is vast and mystic, and one to sit and dream over until dusky night sets in with its dismal obscurity. Then it is pleasant to turn one’s head away from the riverward aspect and greet the glow of cheery lamplight which shines out from the open door of our dining room. The sun is dead ; long live the lamp ! Let us to our dinner. The cook comes in with the great tureen of soup, staggering under fits weight, and having changed our outgoing clothes and brightened up our somewhat dowdy persons, we sit down to assist at that almost religious ceremony of the white man. One of the * The shortness of equatorial twilights is much exaggerated ; night never sets in until half-an-hour after sunset.MSUATA. 277 courses deserves notice—the plantain-eater I shot this morning is roasted on a spit and served up with fried kikwanga. It is delicious, and its large breast rivals a woodcock’s in delicacy. When the meal is over, we sit and discuss the events of the day and form plans for the morrow. About ten. we retire to our respective rooms, and soon, tucked up within mosquito curtains, dreams of the coming night begin to interweave themselves with the occurrences of the day. . . . Bang, bang, bang!—I start up—am I still dreaming, or did I really hear the guns go off? Whilst I am still in doubt, Faraji comes in to say the leopard is shot. Taut mieux ! we will skin him in the morning; and, sinking once more into my little bed, I fall into a sleep which terminates another day at Msuata.CHAPTER XI. HOMEWARDS. he Start for Stanley Pool—A Floating Mimosa Branch— A Troop of Elephants—Ba-yansi on the March—A Blood - brother—Chased by Hippopotami—Juma brings News from Home—The Hills at Stanley Pool—Their Trees and Flowers—Ooquilhat’s Welcome at Kimpoko—Arrive at Kinshasha—A Palaver—Dualla, Stanley's Prime Mini- ster—Bankwa's Speech—My Stay at Leopoldville—Man- YANGA AGAIN—BOAT-VOYAGE TO THE SEA---WELCOME AT Boma—Arrival at Banana—Parting with my Zanzibaris— Back to Civilization.CHIN I'M ZELAN1CIM. CHAPTER XL HOMEWARDS. It was with considerable reluctance that I left Msuata to return once more to Stanley Pool. But the thought that I was now on my homeward route somewhat alleviated the regret with which I badeHOMEWARDS. 281 good-bje to the Upper Congo. On a bright Sunday morning towards the end of April, I set out on my journey down the river with two good-sized native canoes, paddled by my three Zanzibaris and some Kru- manos that Janssen had lent me. The first canoe was fitted up with an awning for the sun, and grass cushions to repose on, and the second contained my heavy baggage and the things I could best afford to lose in case of untoward accidents. In my own canoe I had a few small cases containing such remains of my natural history collections as were spared me by the ants and the rainy season; also my note-books and sketches, which I always carried in a box by my side, fearing to lose these results of my obser- vations if I entrusted them to the care of the men. Janssen stood on the fast-retreating shore of Msuata, as our canoes went six miles an hour down the stream. We shouted au-revoir to one another without any presentiment that it was never “ to the seeing again.” Three months later my kind host of Msuata was drowned opposite his station. But I did not foresee this sad end to a bright career, so my parting was blithe and light-hearted. Every- thing seemed propitious to my journey. The sun shone brightly out of a pale-blue sky, unspotted by the slightest cloud, and his heat was tempered with the tenderest breeze blowing from the west, seeming to me like a message from the sea I was longing to greet. There was a general sense of bright activity in all things. The king-fishers and the bitterns had282 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. never sported with such activity, nor squeaked so lustily at every capture. The grey parrots were starting for their day’s excursion, and whistled melodiously as they whirred over our heads. Even the very fish leapt in glad silvery shoals round the prow of the advancing canoe. The men sang and the paddles clove the water so energetically under their vigorous strokes, that my contentment was at times disturbed by the occasional showers of spray they flung over me and my goods. But I could not check their exuberance. It was too consistent with my own joy at being homeward-bound. Sometimes we raced the floating islands of arums and reeds, and heat them; but they were resigned to that, seeing they would easily catch us up in the night; sometimes we passed triumphantly poor staggering trees, torn up by their roots, with whole retinues of ferns, grasses, and parasitic plants attached, which were quite bewildered by the impetuous current that whirled them round and round, tossed them from side to side, rolled them over, and hurried them along, like miserable captives that they were, in its cruel clutch. One of these torn-up trunks was a species of mimosa, and its boughs were still in rich leaf and decked with beautiful yellow blossoms. Moreover, it carried quite a little population with it along its course. I noticed three lizards running up and down the branches, some butterflies settled on the fragrant blossoms, and two water wagtails sunning and pluming themselves, as if they hadHOMEWARDS. 283 chosen the floating tree-stem as a temporary home.* I began to think my day’s journey was to be de- liciously tranquil, forgetting that in Africa agree- able anticipations are rarely realised. Towards noon, clouds began to collect in the east, from which quarter the rain always seems to come in this part of the Congo region. The wind was certainly blowing from the opposite direction, but this had little effect on the approaching storm, now fast covering the heavens with a blue-black pall, for storms in Africa are too imperious to care for the direction of the prevailing wind. They carry with them in their black bosoms a hurricane of their own, which goes before them in awful gusts and bellowings, and utterly silences the timid breeze that was feebly keeping back the rain. So, when the eye of the storm, a whirling mass of grey cloud round a purple centre, rose before us, we prudently put into the bank, tied the canoes to some stont trees, and then resignedly bent our heads to the tempest that roared over us. The storm was finished in a brief half-hour, but not so the rain, which dripped and dripped in- cessantly ; yet I was too impatient to delay any further for this, and made the men take to their paddles once more. In spite of the wet weather, we achieved considerable progress. At about half-past five, we were coasting beside a very long and narrow island, in search of a camping-place, when I * On many rivers these floating trees must serve as a great means for the diffusion of species.284 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. saw, not ten yards off, a large elephant, with mode- rate-sized tusks, standing amongst the high grass at the water’s edge. He looked superb against the graceful glaucous-green Hyphoene palms which afforded such an artistic back-ground. I did not shoot at him; firstly because it would have spoiled the picture, and secondly because a bullet from a Winchester rifle could do him but little harm. We stayed and watched the mighty beast some five minutes, he not taking the least notice. His colour told out quite greyish-white (the ridge of his back- bone was particularly light in tone) against the foliage, and the whole effect of the grouping made a very pretty composition. We heard other elephants in the interior of the island, breaking down trees and branches, and, curiously enough, round this solitary creature on the beach were several Hyphoene palms laid low, torn down by the voracious elephant for the sake of their round, yellow fruit, of which he is so ravenously fond. That troop of elephants must have reached the island by swimming, as even in the dry season there is water between it and the main- land—a broad channel, in fact. The island is of some magnitude, and is covered with over a thousand palm-trees. We landed a short distance from the place where I had seen the elephant, and camped out for the night on a very small space of sand, which was unfortunately all on a slant, so that during the night I was constantly gliding, feet foremost, off my bed.HOMEWARDS. 285 Add to this myriads of mosquitoes, and it will seem as if the prospect appeared dismal; nevertheless I passed a fairly agreeable evening. The soup was an immense success, and then Janssen had given me some delicious wild honey, which very pleasantly varied the repast. On the morning succeeding the storm, rain-clouds still sullied the sky, but the sun soon overmastered them, and the day became fine and hot. Towards noon, the men asked to stop a little while at a large village on the south bank of the Congo to buy pro- visions. I gave them a quarter of an hour to effect their purchases, and disembarked myself to go and visit some travelling Ba-yansi who were encamped on the shore. They were the same party that had visited Msuata a few days ago to trade, and when I landed they rushed forward with loud cries of recog- nition. Indeed their greeting was quite affectionate. They patted my back, shook hands with me vigor- ously, and led me to look at their encampment. These people certainly understand how to journey comfortably according to the best of their means. A number of little—what shall I call them ?—tents, hovels, huts, were constructed out of matting, im- penetrable.to the rain, and in shape something like a small archway, or a somewhat flattened half-circle. The ground underneath this shelter was. also neatly covered with matting, and inside the hut was the owner’s “ fetish ” or little house-idol, his pipe, his head-rest or pillow, his gun—if he had one—and286 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. various little odds and ends, all neatly done np in skins of animals or native cloth. I bought a head- rest of one man for a tattered old shawl which I had meditated tossing into the Congo as worthless just before. The people here were handing round salt to each other in a large leaf. They eat it alone and with extraordinary gusto. One of these Ba-yansi men that I had previously met at Msuata became so affec- tionate after I had given him a few pinches of table- salt—to them an indescribable delicacy—that be im- plored me to become his “ blood brother.” I half laughingly consented, and he took his knife and, with the point of it, gently scratched my skin (on my fore-arm) as if he were going to vaccinate me. When a few drops of blood had appeared on the scarified flesh, he greedily sucked them, and then, repeating the same process on his own arm, invited me to apply my lips to the wound. I made a show of doing so, and the ceremony was then concluded by our exchanging presents and mutual protestations of eternal friendship. I have never seen this blood- brother of mine from that day when I left him smiling at me as our canoes glided off from the shore, and I confess I should be curious to know whether he would remember me, should we ever meet again. Shortly after we had quitted this place, and rounded a little promontory, we came very abruptly on a group of hippopotami, sunning themselves on a sand-bank. Three of them deliberately gave chaseHOMEWARDS. 287 to us in the first canoe, but we merrily out-distanced them, then they turned about, and, seeing the baggage canoe coming on behind, swam towards it. For a moment I was anxious for my baggage, but the men put out into the open, and the hippopotami, finding a stern chase beyond their powers or incli- nations, desisted and returned to sun themselves. It is true that in taking to the middle of the river the men ran a risk of encountering whirlpools, but by a little skilful steering these were easily avoided, and it was fun to see one of the pursuing hippopotami caught in a foam-flecked vortex, wherein he went whirling round until he was thoroughly giddy, no doubt. Hippopotami are so hold and undisturbed on the Congo that they are a real source of danger to the canoes. One never knows whether to shoot or not. If you hit and do not kill the beast outright, he will come for you with a vengeance; but at the same time, if you do not shoot, he may wreck you from a spirit of pure mischievousness. We rowed long and far to-day. The weather was so fine, the water so smooth, and the scenery so lovely, that as I lay back on my grass cushion in the prow of the canoe, and watched the groups of Hyphoene palms and the hanging woods deploy before me, a beautiful, if somewhat monotonous panorama, the disquietudes and risks of canoe travel- ling seemed very trifling and the pleasure great. I was also able to observe no less than three separate storms, north, east, and south, going on at once, and288 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. to watch their great curtains of rain deluging the sky and literally streaming themselves out, becoming at last a thin veil, through which the distant land- scapes might be observed as a picture that is seen through a veil of double gauze. We fortunately escaped without a wetting, which was exceptionally lucky. Towards five o’clock that afternoon we stopped and disembarked on a strip of sandy beach, sur- rounded by high grass and stunted trees, with the fine hills on the opposite shore rising above the water, thickly wooded, as on the borders of some Scotch lake. The river narrows strangely here, and seems shut in with hills. I sat down on the beach to sketch, when I heard the men calling out that “ Juma ” was coming. Juma was a Zanzibari whom Janssen had recently sent to Leopoldville with letters to Mr. Stanley, and was now returning to Msuata. I had but little hope of news, having been so often disappointed, so I was proportionately pleased when Juma came and placed a large packet in my hand which contained such, to me, priceless treasures. Letters from Europe I had not had for many months, and here there were dozens in my lap. Graphics, Punches and Telegraphs stared at me from their battered postal covers, as if surprised to find them- selves, probably for the first time, on the Upper Congo. I passed consequently a very happy evening, and so did my men, for I had given largesse with an ample hand in consideration of my good fortune.HOMEWARDS. 289 Our journey the next morning* was comparatively uneventful. The flies were peculiarly annoying, especially a large brown one that gives a very cruel bite. They seemed to increase in numbers as we approached the Pool. I stopped for a short time to draw some white lilies* that grew by the borders of the river in great numbers, and were very noticeable at this season of the year, with their tall clusters of delicate white flowers. We rowed into the Pool towards the after- noon, and I was more than ever struck with its im- posing aspect. I can quite imagine that Stanley, on descending the Congo in 1877, must have thought himself entering here on some great lake or inland sea, as he saw the clear horizon of water expanding before him. The vegetation which clothes the precipitous shores on the south side of Stanley Pool, near the entrance from the Upper River, is one of the most magnificent spectacles the Congo offers. Rising nearly perpendicularly from the water, the forest climbs the hillsides, higher than the eye can reach, without a single break in its luxuriance. The variety of colours, too, at this season, when most of the trees are in blossom, is particularly striking. One tree-top will be covered with scarlet flowers scattered with a liberal hand; another has pendulous * Crinum zelanicum. A common lily in equatorial Africa giving a most fragrant scent, and much thronged by the flies and bees. TJ290 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. flowers of a pinky-white hanging gracefully by their long stalks amid the sombre masses of foliage; while errant creepers in exuberant growth trail their yellow and purple blossoms over the victims they entwine. There is every note struck in the gamut of green, and the trees that form this mass of foliage may vary in tone from blue-green to greenish-yellow, and from greenish-white to russet-red, and they will differ equally in form and aspect. While some are compactly massed in their leafage, others grow er- ratically and in disordered tufts. Beautiful mimosas dominate their fellows, clothed in foliage of dark green velvet; dracoenas raise their spiky heads here and there from out of the soft verdant mass. The large flat leaves of a fig alternate with the feathery palm fronds, while many stems are completely dis- guised by the network of graceful creepers which masks them like a vegetable cobweb. The calamus palm makes a sort of lattice-work fence, rising straight up from the water’s edge, and seems effec- tually to forbid trespassing in these fairy forests, while along the river’s brim lines of white lilies stand like sentinels to see the barrier is not passed. Before evening we had arrived at Kimpoko, a newly-founded station at the northern entrance to Stanley Pool. Here the pleasant face of Lieutenant Coquilhat was greeting me as I landed, and after four months’ absence from anything connected with the outside world this return to the outskirts of civilization (which, owing to Mr. Stanley, StanleyHOMEWARDS. 291 Pool has now become) completely prevented my sleeping till a late hour in the night, and I kept up poor Coquilhat talking all the time, and discussing the European news of half a year. The following day I again set out on my journey towards Leopoldville, and voyaged for three hours amid the islands and sand-banks, and the great placid waters of the Pooh The “ Dover Cliffs ” glittered in the morning sunlight in all their chalk-like brilliancy, and, with the soft green grass that crowned their scarped summits, looked singularly English. I arrived at Kinshasha towards mid-day, and saw there the “Royal,” and quite a fleet of other boats. Stanley was here, they told me, conducting a palaver. I landed, and walked up through the tall, luxuriant grasses, and past the many native houses, deserted by their inhabitants, to the focus of attraction, which was a large enclosure between high palisades, where, under the shade of splendid baobabs, and amid a green tracery of palm fronds and creepers, a most imposing palaver was going on. A rough circle or amphitheatre of human beings was formed, those of the inner ranks seated and attentive, and they whom an inferior grade in society relegated to a less prominent position standing up, their arms round each others' waists and necks in the limply caressing way so natural to these people. But seated opposite to each other in the circle were two important groups which attracted alternately supreme attention. All that was chiefest u 2292 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. in Black and White was engaged in earnest delibe- ration. On two superb leopards’ skins sat the two principal kinglets of the neighbourhood. One, an old man, with sunken jaws, but a refined-looking face ; the other, a very heavy, vulgar-looking person, who spoke but little, and whose stolid silence THE ISLAND OPPOSITE KINSHASHA. evidently covered a want of mental force. In face of them was “ Bula Matade,” looking his most chief- like, with his resolute face and grey hair, and the sword of state at his side. On his left sat a young Belgian officer, awaiting the favourable result of the palaver to found a station at Kinshasha ; and atHOMEWARDS. 293 Stanley’s feet Dualla, prime minister, interpreter and counsellor, argued, persuaded, and cajoled the black brothers of the w Stone-Breaking ” chief into concordance with his wishes. When I had ex- changed a hasty greeting with Stanley, and taken a seat by his side, the palaver, which I had momen- tarily interrupted, went on again. Banlcwa, a chief who was opposed to Stanley’s building and founding a station at Kinshasha, rose to his legs and made a lengthy speech, strongly advising the two chiefs on the leopard-skins to have nothing to do with white men. “ To-day,” he said, “they will send one white man here, but next year twenty more will come, and because we have given land to one, we must do so to all the others; and so, soon, Kinshasha will belong to the white man, as Kin tamo (Leopoldville) does already.” There was a great deal of truth m Bankwa’s remarks, but unfortunately he could not look beyond the immediate present, and conjure up from his inner consciousness a picture of the material advantages that would accrue to the people of Kinshasha from the settlement of civilization in its midst. However, his opposition was overnded, and the result of the palaver was favourable to Stanley, permission to occupy land and build a station being given. Then presents were interchanged, and we left the delighted people shrieking “ Mbote ” at the departing steamer till they were hoarse. Once more Kallina Point rose before my eyes, and further on I saw the many buildings of Leopoldville294 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. and the Baptist Mission surmounting the hill ot Ntamo. As I landed with Stanley at the little port of the station and walked up the steep ascent through the Zanzibari’s village, and the beautiful banana groves, the whole place had a tender, homelike look about it, bathed as it was in the soft afternoon sunlight, and surrounded by so many evidences of comfort and civilization, strange to my eyes, so long accustomed to the wilderness. But all was not the same as when I had left Leopoldville in the early part of the year to ascend the river. New buildings upraised themselves, new faces looked out on me, and many old ones were gone from the scene. I stayed with Stanley for nearly ten days at Leopoldville, and enjoyed his hospitality to the full. With plenty of books, good food, and a most enter- taining host, the time passed hut too quickly, and I really felt quite lonely as I once more set out on my journey to the coast. We took five days returning to Manyanga, and here I paused again, to rest under the roof of my good friend Nilis, for the climate was beginning to tell a little on my health, and a few days of continuous travel brought on great lassitude and fatigue. It took us two days to descend the Congo in a whale- boat to Isangila, where I met many old friends and new arrivals en route for the Upper River. Here too, was the charming and intellectual Abbe Guillot, the pioneer of the Franco-Algerian missions on the Upper Congo, who a few months later was drownedHOMEWARDS. 295 in the fickle stream in company with poor Janssen. I left Isangila after a night’s rest, and set out for Vivi, the last stage of my journey to he done on foot. Though we were now in the month of May, the rainy season was still in full vigour; and the first night after leaving Isangila there was a terrific downpour. I had but a few miserable carriers, beside my three faithful Zanzibaris, and these former were sluggish and obstinate Kabindas. When the rain began they quietly stepped out of the path, made themselves shelters of branches, and proceeded to rest for the night there, with my baggage, while I had gone on in front; consequently I was obliged to pass the night with little shelter from the rain, and no food whatever. However, I reached Vivi ultimately after three days’ walking, with no more serious complaint than exhaustion arising from fatigue; and the quiet weeks of continuous rest that I passed there soon restored me to a fair amount of strength. Whilst stopping at Vivi I visited the Falls of Yellala, as described in Chapter III., and made a few other excursions in the neighbourhood. Then, as the time for meeting, the ocean steamer drew nigh, I em- barked on board a whale-boat belonging to the station (the little river steamer of the Expedition being temporarily disabled), and, with a crew of Zanzibaris and Kruboys, made my way slowly down to the sea. This journey, usually lasting nine or ten hours, took me three days, and, owing to a continued attack of rheumatism, was not over-agreeable. The first296 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. night we had intended to reach Boma at sundown, but, owing to difficult complications, we were still painfully straggling along the broadened stream and threading an uncertain course through the sand- banks at ten o’clock at night. At length the red and lurid moon arose, having lost a quarter, and looking like a Dutch cheese with the top cut off, and showed us more clearly our course amid the wooded islets that stud the middle of the river. We landed at the first house to be seen on the outskirts of Boma, which fortunately turned out to be a factory of Messrs. Hatton and Cookson’s. Here I received, though utterly unknown to the inmates of the house, a most kindly reception, such as I have ever met with from English and Anglo- Portuguese houses in Africa. Although the night was far advanced, the cook was roused from his slumbers, and the gentlemen of the house bestirred themselves to make me comfortable. I went to bed first, as an attack of fever was menacing ; but, later on, the delicious meal of fragrant tea and cold wild- duck, which was spread by my bedside, banished the preliminary shivers, and I afterwards found in sleep a sweet restorative. The next day I break- fasted with M. Grillis, a Belgian merchant of Boma, and then proceeded farther on my way to Ponta da Lenha. Here also I arrived late at night, but this time our way was strangely illuminated by the great grass fires which covered the distant hills with sheets of vivid flame.HOMEWARDS. 297 Soon after leaving Ponta da Lenha the mangroves begin to attest the commencement of brackish water, and the river widens till its opposite bank is well- nigh invisible, and many islands troop in long succession, often seeming to be the mainland on the other side. Then we pass Kissange rapidly, carried on by the current, and, lastly, a whiff of fresh breeze blows the sea smell into our nostrils, and in the far distance the white houses of Banana are seen, and beyond the open horizon of the Atlantic Ocean. I spent three days at Banana, waiting for the Portuguese steamer, and passed my time in choosing presents for my three Zanzibaris out of the stores at the Dutch house. Each man received a blanket, a pipe, a roll of tobacco and a tobacco-pouch, a pocket-knife, a pair of scissors and a looking-glass; and then I further bestowed a little gift of money, with strict injunctions that it was to be kept and spent only on their return journey to Zanzibar. I received much kindness during these few days at Banana from M. Sartou of the French factory, and from my old acquaintances at the Dutch house ; nevertheless, the approaching return to civilized countries, and the slight foretaste of civilization to be got at Banana, did not strike me as being so enviable as I had hitherto supposed. I felt a positive regret for the quiet, simple life of Msuata and the Upper Itiver, and grew saddened at the approaching separation from my three faithful followers, with whom my later African wanderings had been so298 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. inseparably and happily associated. Ever since the day when I first saw these men in the porch of Stanley’s house at Yivi, there had sprung up between us a real sympathy of feeling. These men were to me more than servants ; they were friends and confidants, who shared in my mirth when I was gay, bore meekly my ill-humour when I was cross; nursed me when I was sick; washed for me, cooked for me, mended my clothes; watched over my interests, never robbed me of a penny’s worth nor told me an untruth. If Faraji, Mafta, and Imbono may be taken as fair samples of the Semito-negroid population of East Africa, then I think this hybrid race is destined to largely help in the opening-up of Africa. The mixture of Arab blood and Arab culture gives a stability and manliness to the Waswahili which is lacking in even the finest race of pure Negro < origin. The Congo peoples, for instance, are usually amiable and soft-mannered, but at heart they are seldom to be depended on. There is something so eminently childish in the Negro’s character. A love of talking, a desire to thrust himself forward in every matter, a naivete of manner which is at times very amusing, but which becomes somewhat wearisome when you are no longer content to be amused, and seek for something more reliable than mere simplicity of thought. All these traits are found in the black races of Africa that are of purely Negro or Bantu stock; but in the Semiticised people of Zanzibar you find menHOMEWARDS. 299 of thought and reflection, whom you may use as counsellors and confidants ; men who are really capable of zealous service, of disinterested affection, and to whom gratitude is a concept neither foreign to their intelligence nor their tongue. Arrived on board the mail steamer “ Portugal,” I found myself, after many months’ absence from civilization, once more among people that were fashionably dressed. Fresh from Europe, and touch- ing at the African continent for the first time on the voyage, they regarded me curiously as I walked about the deck in my tattered garments and cumbrous boots, and I felt myself morbidly sensitive to their scrutiny. Faraji, Mafta and Imbono had said their last good-byes, and the boat which bore them back to the shore was disappearing fast from my view in the evening mists that swathed the swampy coast; the Krumen who had accompanied me from Yivi had also gone, in haste to spend the little money- presents I had given them ; I felt singularly and sadly alone—somewhat like a ^fallen potentate. Here were people who, far from shrinking from my frown, glared at me unmoved, and calmly reviewed my idiosyncrasies through their insolent eyeglasses. The stewards were anything but deferential, and asked pointedly to see my first-class ticket. How- ever, I ransacked my weather-stained trunks and found in them some remnants of respectable clothing, such as might befit the decent poor ; but when I sat down at the end of a long table cl’hote with the spick-300 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. and-,span Portuguese officials and their wives, who were carrying with them into their African exile as much flavour of fashionable Lisbon as they could wear on their persons, I felt myself to be a great bar- barian, and almost wished to be back in the centre of Africa, where I should once more lead the ton. At last, after two days’ steaming, the beautiful Bay of Loanda opened out before us, and I knew myself to be among friends. I walked hurriedly up through the sandy streets, to a blue-and-white house situated on an eminence overlooking the town, from whose roof the Union Jack rose proudly into the still air. The consul was looking out of his study window, and thought I was either a beggar or a “ degredado ” come to solicit work; but when I looked up at him and laughed, he welcomed me as one come from the dead (perhaps more heartily than in that case), and under his hospitable roof I had a happy foretaste of an English home.CHAPTER XII. CLIMATE AND NATURAL HISTORY. The Unhealthy Districts — Drinking-water — Precautions against Sunstroke—How to live on the Congo—The Ex- cessive Moisture—The Rainy Season—“ Smokes ”—“ Little Dries ”—The Dry Season—Thu African Spring—Early Summer—Violence of the Storms—The Harvest—Geology of the District—Metals—Flora and Fauna—The River NOT A NATURAL BOUNDARY — BOTANICAL ORDERS CHIEFLY represented—The Palms—List of characteristic Specimens COLLECTED—COLOUR AND FRAGRANCE.CLIMATE AND NATURAL DISTORT. 303 CHAPTER XII. CLIMATE AND NATURAL HISTORY.—BOTANY. The climate of the Western Congo naturally varies in different degrees of healthiness and temperature, CAMOENSIA MAXIMA. according* to the regions through which the river passes, but on the whole it may be said to be infi- nitely superior to that of the Niger or the Grold Coast. The great absence of low, marshy ground304 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. about its banks is doubtless the cause of less virulent fever, and the regular cool breezes from the South Atlantic greatly reduce the tropical heat. The river probably is least healthy between Boma and the sea, owing, no doubt, to the mangrove swamps that inevitably attend the widening out of the embou- chure. Boma itself is decidedly insalubrious. It is the hottest place on the Congo, and surrounded by many marshes. Towards Yivi it becomes decidedly cooler, owing to the greater elevation; and the higher you proceed up the river the healthier the climate becomes. One aid to, salubrity is the magni- ficent drinking water that may be had everywhere above Boma ; not the water of the Congo—which, though wholesome, has a disagreeably sweet taste— but the water from the unnumbered rills and rivulets which are everywhere trickling, wet and dry season alike, all the year round. Consequently dysentery is almost unknown above Yivi. The most prevalent form of sickness is the ordinary African fever from over-exposure to the sun and sudden chills. The most dangerous malady is bilious fever, the “ febre perniciosa” of the Portuguese, but this is rarely incurred without much previous neglect of one’s health. Beyond Stanley Pool, I can only call the temperature delightful. It ranges, at such a place as Msuata for instance, from 87° in the shade at noon to 60° at two in the morning, and this in the rainy or hot season. The highest temperature I have ever observed at Yivi was 98° in the shade, on a very hotCLIMATE AND NATURAL HISTORY. 305 day. It is quite possible to walk about all through, the middle of the day and not feel the heat dis- agreeable, provided you wear a helmet and carry an umbrella; but when you see, as I have seen, young men newly arrived from Europe exposing themselves to the noonday sun with nothing but a smoking-cap on their heads, you will hardly be surprised that occasionally deaths from sunstroke take place. And then the relatives of these victims of their own im- prudence write to the papers, especially in Belgium, and speak of the cruel African Minotaur and its meal of white flesh! The fact is that under a tropical sun much greater prudence and care are needed to regulate one’s mode of living in accordance with the surrounding conditions than in the temperate zones, where the effect follows less rapidly on the cause. In the hot regions, more especially in the countries that are hot and moist, the agencies of nature are somewhat sudden and violent in their action. Every- thing is “ forced ” and hurriedly urged on to a climax. What in Europe would be a mere im- prudence, only causing a serious effect if long per- sisted in, becomes under an African sun a grave danger. You over-eat yourself, for instance (an excess both common and excusable when entailed by the violent, unhealthy appetites which the climate often promotes); and, instead of being quit with an ordinary attack of indigestion, you find yourself laid up with a sharp attack of bilious fever, and perhaps, before you or your companions have time to check x306 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. the rapid growlh of the malady, other complications set in, and in two or three days you are dead. Yet it is possible to enjoy excellent health on the Congo, if only it be borne upon one’s mind to use moderation in all things. Abstain from nothing that is pleasant and innocuous, but abuse no form of enjoyment. Eat, drink, and be merry, and remember that meagre abstention is as harmful as riotous excess. Let every man judge for himself and follow implicitly within due bounds the dictates of his stomach—that is when he has no reason to believe he is prompted by unhealthy cravings. If you conceive a great love for jams and sweet biscuits, indulge in them till satiety begins to take the edge off your greediness, and in all probability this desire for “ sweets ” is prompted by a necessity for sugar in your system. Avoid alcohol as much as you can. It is almost a case in which abstention is excusable, for wine and brandy are dangerous adjuncts to a healthy man’s repast in Africa. On the other hand, alcohol is simply invaluable as a tonic when weak from fever or other causes. Beer, in my own case, proved beneficial and agreeable, but with others it provoked biliousness. Wash in warm water rather than cold, dress warmly and sleep well covered; satisfy all reasonable and natural desires, and you will find life on the Congo both healthy and enjoyable. The great fault of the climate lies in the exces- sive damp. Even in the dry season there is great moisture in the air, for, though there is no downrightCLIMATE AND NATURAL HISTORY. 307 rain, yet the mornings and evenings are ushered in by dense white mists, like low-lying clouds, which incessantly filter through the clammy atmosphere a drizzling vaporous spray that descends over every- thing like a heavy dew. This is the “ cacimbo ” of the Portuguese colonies and the “ smokes ” of the Guinea coast. These morning and evening mists are characteristic of the rainy season, and during the rainy months they disappear, and the beginning and closing of the day is generally bright and clear. The relative length of the rainy season varies as you advance from the mouth of the Congo towards the equator. Near the sea there are about four months of rain—November, December, February, and March, with an intermediate dry season in the month of January ; but ascending the river you find this gradually altering, and on Stanley Pool the rains commence in October and continue till about the 20th of May, thus leaving four months of dry season. There is also here no interval in January, no “ little dries,” as they are called. Higher up the river still, approaching the equator, the natives tell me it rains often in June, August, and September, so that this may be called a true equatorial climate, where rain is seldom absent, and consequently, as we find at Boldbd, this is the region of perpetual forest. The reason this forest belt does not extend more fully over Africa is that, where there is a continuous dry season of four, five, or six months, there is time for308 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. the long grass to become thoroughly tindered by the sun, and the natives can then more easily set going the great bush-fires, in which they delight, which clear the ground for their plantations, and at the same time sweep the forest from the hills. In the equatorial regions of perpetual moisture this is impossible, and so the forest country there, with its somewhat peculiar fauna and avi-fauna, continues to represent a condition of things which probably existed more widely over Africa before the advent of man, or, rather, before the period when man first began to give some effect to his growing dissatisfac- tion with the arrangements of Nature, and to take the law into his own hands. I am sure that the arboreal life of our species dates very far back in its development, and that, like our cousins the baboons, we had, whilst we were yet mere monkeys, begun to prefer the rocks and caverns* and the knolls of observation in an open country to the dense woods in which our degraded relations the gorillas and orangs still skulk in sullen shyness. As a rule man is an enemy of the forest, and has done much to circum- scribe his future supplies of coal, but perhaps on the whole he is unconsciously right. The open country is far healthier and brighter than the gloomy mysterious forest depths, and the higher forms of mammals— those that are strongest in intelligence and widest in range—seem to have been evolved from the breezy plateaus and rolling plains. * Early paleolithic man is constantly associated with caves.CLIMATE AND NATURAL HISTORY. 309 It seems to be hardly realised how wintry is the aspect of the dry season in the tropics. Many more of the trees in Africa are deciduous than we often imagine in our conjured-up mental visions of a fair tropic land, where perpetual verdure reigns, and the vegetation is a vague, indefinite mixture of limp palms, with fronds like ostrich-feathers, and rampant bananas raising their florid greenery above the masses of formless creepers. But nevertheless, when about a month has elapsed after the last rains are over, the aspect of an African hill-side has much of the cheerless desolation of winter about it. The once imposing baobabs, whose masses of verdure were fair to see, are reduced to mazes of leafless twigs; the ground is covered with a brown carpet of fallen leaves; many trees, though retaining their foliage, put forth no fresh shoots, and are yellow and seared with the hot sun; here and there an evergreen stands out, like an English yew or holly, in almost heartless contrast of dark cold green amid its faded, withered fellows, and next to it, perhaps, is a white skeleton of what was a short time since a tufted tree. The tall herbs, erewhile gay with gorgeous flowers, show now nothing but yellow stalks and shrivelled seed-vessels, in which perhaps there still lurks a point of colour in the red or orange seeds that gleam from under the brown husk. The many tiny flowerets, the mosses and fungi, are scarce to find; only certain repulsive plants—things with fleshy, mutilated limbs, weirdly swollen, distorted and covered with malicious310 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. prickles—stand forth in disagreeable prominence, screened from view no longer by the fair and deli- cate creeping ferns and clambering lycopodiums, and seeming to stand unchanged and prosperous when all else fades and dies. In the great meadows through which the path meanders the waving grasses are laid low, and in their place are dismal tracts of black ashes where the bush fires have just swept by. But the dry season is hardly death as much as recuperation. It is a short pause—a sleep in which the expended forces of Nature are once more gathered in. Just as the earth in its summer sol- stice spins out from the sun’s control like a restless child, and then, wearied with its wilfulness, lets itself be slowly drawn in again to run its sober winter journey, so its tiny children, who have rioted in all the exuberant excesses of spring and summer, need the repose of the slack months to restore their energies. The birds put away their fine clothes, the “ season ” being over, and go into villegiature in plain suits of every-day garments. The whydah-bird especially, who all the summer long was the veriest rake, and flaunted his long plumes wantonly before the eyes of his lady friends in a manner quite disastrous to their virtue, has now lost his good looks, and assumes the bearing of a cynic wearied with excess of love and easy conquests, dropping his beautiful deportment and rich dress, and assuming a costume that is strictly plain and almost shabby. He also has to economise for his past expenditure, but itCLIMATE AND NATURAL HISTORY. 311 is also with the view of having u another good time ” by and by. Whether life’s cycle has had a beginning, and will have an end, we know not, but to our finite compre- hension it seems eternal. Out of life comes death, which is inactivity, and out of this springs active life again. The perennials die down to their roots, exhausted with their late display of vigour, but when the returning rains once more soften and cool the dry, cracked soil, up spring the bright young shoots from the old stock to flourish anew and live their life. And if the annual dies, has it not scat- tered round it germs from which a hundred children rise to carry on its pedigree and spread its race ? So, if there is a winter in Africa, there is also a spring, full of hope and promise and cheerful activity. The first rains are seldom, violent or long continued, but they effectually moisten the soil and cause the dried-up brooks to flow and the rivers to swell. Then a myriad flowers blow, the sternest, woodiest shrubs evince an unsuspected tenderness; spiteful euphorbias, prickly acacias, apopletic baobabs show that some poetic feeling lurks beneath their forbid- ding exterior and finds a vent in innocent and fragrant blossoms. A wealth of colour fills the woods, the plain, the swamps, and e’en the harshest rocks and mountains. Tall orchids spring up by the river-side, proud of their matchless beauty. Cannas and amomums lurk in all the damp, luxuriant glades. The largest trees—stern, sober and business312 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. like all the rest of the year—display a fortnight’s blaze of blossoming in a sudden and abrupt manner, as if ashamed of the weakness. The very flowering of the grasses tries to be feebly pretty; and, as they have no petals to boast of, they show their purple stamens apologetically. The birds build. The weaver-birds hang their pendent nests on all the grass stalks that border the streams. The coarse, boisterous fishing-eagles furbish up their dirty, un- tidy eyries, and carry on and quickly conclude a soul- less courtship; the “ am’rous doves ” begin their sickly-sentimental cooing in every shady tree, and bright, practical couples of parrots may he seen bustling round the hollows in many a trunk that contains their intended breeding-place. About this season the natives will bring you many young animals—perhaps the cubs of a black-backed jackal, or the sweet little kittens of a genet cat. In the still reaches of the river, on some quiet evening, you may see the mamma hippopotamus leaving the water in a leisurely manner, accompanied by her fine pink baby; they are intending to sleep on shore for greater security from those nasty spiteful croco- diles, whose young ones, by the bye, are just emerg- ing from the egg and running the gauntlet, not only of their natural enemies, the storks and ibises and ichneumons, hut, I am sorry to say, of their unnatural papas, who don’t approv.e of large families. So the spring advances till it is summer, and then come a few short weeks of delicious monotony, whenCLIMATE AND NATURAL HISTORY. 313 the rain diminishes, and Nature in the acme of her beauty stands still in a sweet content. But on con- tent there follows a burst of riotous excess. The air is charged with electricity. The storms recom- mence with a fury and violence which never marked them heretofore. The thunder roars, the wind howls, and the rain descends in disordered floods that are no longer the gentle revivers of a thirsty world, but the reckless destroyers of fragile beauty. Against the piled-up hanks of sullen cloud the lightning blazes in silent, vivid wrath, or, moved to greater vehemence of anger, tears in zigzags over the hill- sides and deals out sudden death. Between these stormy outbursts come intervals of tearful repentance. The battered flowers lie low, branches and leaves strew the rain-pitted strand, the sky is a pale ex- hausted blue, and Nature, like a passionate woman, seems disposed to regret her violence, and perhaps through the voice of some small piping bird falters out her repentance over the disordered scene. But she is excited by the ardent sun, who is always imbuing the hot air with a feverishness of unas- suaged desire. There is a lustfulness now in most things. The crocodiles hoarsely roar at night with strange love promptings. The heavy hippopotami pursue their mates at sundown with amorous grunt- ings, crashing through the high rank grass. The very grass itself, once, when the rain first came, a tender green and timid bladelet, creeping above the ashes of its predecessor, is now become an insolent314 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. obstruction, with strong and knotted stem andrazor- bladed leaves, thrusting its many flower-heads in your face, a very upstart in vulgar pride. Man himself seems swayed by this time of orgie. The crops are gathered in, the sugar-cane is cut, and, from its juice a heady spirit is made which furnishes the cause and excuse of many a wild debauch. It is time that Nature put a check upon her riot; the wanton world must be purified with fire. Then the rain ceases, the ground dries, the river shrinks. Submerged islands reappear, and cut-off pools stag- nate. The always-shining sun is quickly preparing the fiery purification. One day a native throws a lighted brand among the withered herbage. The wind springs up, and an awful blaze roars before it, sweeping rapidly over the hills, so rapidly that, while it reduces the grass to tinder, it does little more than scorch the trees. Then, with the increasing drought, life resumes its soberness. The bull hippopotami skulk in groups of celibates apart from their mates, who, with the presentiment of a future maternity, lead a quiet and regular life. The doves relax in their cooing, and devote themselves to a gluttonous repast on the mpiy seeds which are now scattered broad- cast on the soil. The baobabs shed their leaves, and everything once more re-enters the winter state of repose and recuperation. The rain on the Congo not only falls with con- siderable force and persistance, the downpour some- times lasting continuously for twenty hours, but alsoCLIMATE AND NATURAL HISTORY. 315 seems to possess some chemical quality which aids it in disintegrating the hard metamorphic rocks, and in forming the deep red surface soil. The action of water, both falling from the sky and coursing in torrents down the hills, has largely modified the surface in the Congo lands. Strange hollows and ravines are scooped out by the rain wherever it finds a weak spot, and, after every heavy thunderstorm, the water rushing down the hillsides in temporary brooks carries with it quantities of the friable soil, and cuts great channels which in course of time become accentuated and deepened till their sides fall in, and thus the mountain or hillock is slowly but surely being levelled and the valley filled up. Here and there in the hilly cataract region great isolated blocks of quartz lie about, either washed out from the hillside by rain-made landslips, or forming in a plain the last relics of a bygone hill that has long resisted disintegration. In the bed of the river there are many rocks of clay slate. Basalt also enters into the geological formation of the country, and on the river above Stanley Pool the rocks appear volcanic. Iron is abundant throughout the Congo basin— many of the rocks are streaked with ferruginous stains—and is known and used by the natives, who call it mputo. Neither silver nor gold are known by the Congo people. When shown gold by a European they take it for inferior copper. Topazes are said to be found near Bolobb, as I have mentioned in my account of that place. I have316 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. never, however, seen any precious stone of any kind in the possession of the natives ; flakes of mica 1 have noticed among some of their charms. The fauna and flora of the Congo region between the Stanley Falls, which lie almost in the centre of the continent, and the coast, are by no means uni- form, and may be said to offer three distinct aspects, caused by the character of the regions through which the Congo flows. What may be known as the first region extends from the sea-coast some eighty miles at most inland, and belongs to the marshy forest belt that stretches all along the western littoral of Africa from Cabe 55 55 55 Vivi. Everywhere. 5» 55 55 55 Family 11.—Sturnidse. Lamprocolius purpureus Everywhere on Lower river. Family 12.—Corvidae. Oorvus scapulatus Near the coast and on Upper river. Absent or rare in cataract region.366 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. Order II.—PICARLZE. Where observed. Family 1.—Picidse. Deudropicus sp. Lower river and coast. Yerreauxia sp. Family 2.—Megaleemidse. Pogonorhyncus eeogaster Common on Lower region, Trachyphonus sp. Family 3.—Coraciidse. Coracias spatulata Occasional in cataract Eurystonms sp. gion. On Upper river. Family 4.—Caprimulgidse. Caprimulgus lentiginosus Everywhere. Cosmetornis sp. Cataract region. Family 5.—Cypselidse. Cypselus sp. Occasionally seen on river. Family 6.—Strigidee. Scotopelia peli Most parts. Syrnium sp. Reported to be seen. Strix sp. 5? Family 7.—Meropidse. Merops apiaster Common. „ rubieoides Rare; observed at Vivj. Melittopbagus pusillus Common. Family 8.—Halcyonidse. Halcyon ^engalensis Lower river. „ albiventris Corytbornis cristatus Everywhere. Alcedo sp. inc. [with black beak" ) and larger than C. cristatus; > Upper river. white ear-spot] ' Ceryle rudis Everywhere. „ maxima >>NATURAL HISTORY. 367 Family 9.—JBucerotidse. Tockus melanoleneus (?) ,, semifasciatus Berenicornis sp. (?) Family 10.— Ujpupidse. Upupa sp. ,, nana (?) Irrisor cyanomelas Where observed. Most parts. ?» Lower river. Cataract region. 55 Family 11.—Cuculidse. Centropus snperciliosus „ * monachns Chrysococcyx sp. Everywhere. 55 Lower Congo and coast. Family 12.—Coliidse. Colius senegalensis „ lencotis (?) Everywhere. 55 Family 13.—Musophagidse. Musophaga violacea Sekizorhis giganteus Lower river. Upper river. Okder III.- -PSITTACI. Family 1.—Psittacidse. Agapornis pnllaria Not often seen on Congo; when observed generally in Lower river. Poeocephalus robustns „ Riippelii Psittacus erythacus Lower river. Everywhere. Everywhere; most common. Order IV.—GALLINACEA. Family 1.—Phasianidse. Cotnrnix histrionica Francolinns capensis „ afer Nnmida cristata „ cornuta Lower river and coast. Interior. Most parts. Upper river. 55368 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. Order V.—PLUVIALES. Sub-Order I.- Family 1.—Otididse. (Edicnemus sp. Family 2.—Phoenicojpteridse. Phoenicopterus antiquorum Family 3.—CJiaradriidw. Lobivanellus albiceps iEgialites sp. (?) Forbesii (?) ) „ tricollaris (?) f Pluvianus iEgypfcius Tringoides hypoleucus Sub- Famil y 1.—Parridee. Parra africana Family 4.—Laridse. Sterna caspia ) Ehyncops sp. f Sub-Order II. Family 1.— Columbidee. Treron calva Turtur vinaceus „ semitorquatus Cbaleopelia afra „ puella GrRALLiE. Where observed. Cataract region. (I have seen wings of this bird, and feathers, in pos- session of the natives.) Everywhere in water- courses. Common on Upper river. Everywhere common. Cataract region. Abundant on most parts of river. Common on Upper river. -CoLUMB-ZE. Most parts. Everywhere. >5 Sub-Order III.—Rall^e. Family 1.—Gruidse, Balearica pavonina t Stanley Pool and Upper Grus carunculata I river.NATURAL HISTORY. 369 Family 2.— Ballidse. Porziana sp. (?) Hydrornia Alleni (?) Porpliyrio sp. (?) Where observed. Vivi; Isangila marshes. Stanley Pool and many broad parts of Congo. Family 3.—Fulicidse. Fulica cristata Stanley Pool and many broad parts of Congo. Family 4.—Podicidde. Podica sp. Stanley Pool, Lower Congo and coast. Sub-Order IV.—Anseres. Family 1.—Plectrojpteridse. Plectropterus gambensis 1 Chenalopex iEgyptiaca 1 i Stanley Pool, and all broad l parts of river, lagoons, &c. Family 2.—Anatidse. Anas xanthorhyncns Stanley Pool, and all broad parts of river, lagoons, &c Sub-Order V.—Pelicani. Family 1.—P^ialacrocoracidse. Plotus Levaillanti Phalacrocorax minimus (?) Everywhere. Family 2.—Sulidee. Snla capensis ] Phaethon aethereus | j> Mouth of river and coast. Family 3.—Pelicanidse. Pelicanns onocrotalus Most parts. Family 4.—Fregatidse. Fregata aqnila Neighbouring coast. 2 B370 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. Sub-Order YI.—Ciconi^e. Family l.—Ardeidse. Nycticorax cucullatus Tigrisoma scmolophum Butorides africapillus Ardea purperea „ atricollis „ Goliath „ squacco „ alba ’C„ bubulcus Sub-Family 1.—Baloemcepinse. Baloeniceps rex (?) Sub-Family 2.—Scopinee. Scopus umbretta Sub-Family S.—Ciconinee. Cicouia alba * Dissura episcopus Xenorhyncus senegaleusis Leptoptilus crumeniferus Tantalus sp. Family 2.—Plcitaleidse. Platalea sp. Sub-Family 1.—Tbidinse. Ibis mthiopica Plegades falcinellus (?) Where observed. Most parts by river and marshes. Occasionally seen. Most common everywhere. Upper river. Everywhere. Mr. Stanley says he has frequently seen this bird on Upper river, and describes it accurately. Everywhere; one of the commonest Congo birds. Upper river. ? 5 Most parts. Stanley Pool. Stanley Pool. Upper river. Upper and Lower river. * I have.shot this bird in Angola and on the river Kunene. Is it a migrant ?NATURAL HISTORY. 371 Where observed. Sub-Family 1.—Ibidinae (cont.) Lophotibis carunculata (?) [Ibis \ with very short and thick V Upper and Lower river, beak; plumage glossy green J and ash-grey.] Order VI.—ACCIPITRES. Family 1.—Falconidse. Sub-Family 1.—GypoMeracinse. Gypohierax formosus* Sub-Family 2.—Milvinee. Milvus migrans Sub-Family 3.—JButeoninse. Buteo sp. Nisaetus sp. Spizaetus sp. Haliaetus vocifer Sub-Family 4.—Circinse. Circus sp. „ ranivorus Sub-Family 5.—Accipitrinae. Astur sp. Accipiter sp. Asturinula sp. (?) All over. Very common. Common in cataract region. Upper river. Most parts. Most parts. Most parts; difficult to identify species. * I venture humbly to change the specific name of Gypohierax to “formosus” because it is a remarkably bright and handsome bird, and because, for a creature that ranges from the Senegal to Damara-land and the Upper Zambesi, “ angolensis” is too re- strictive a qualification. 2 b 2372 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. Sub-Family 6.—Falconinse. Tinnunculus sp. Where observed. Upper river. Sub-Family 7.—Machoeramphinee. Macboerampbus Anderssoni Yivi.CHAPTER XV. NATURAL HISTORY—MAMMALS. Monkeys—Mandrills—The Gorilla—Lemurs—The Leopard— The Lion—Tiger-Cats—Hyaenas—The Ciyet Cat—The Genet Cat—Jackals—The Manatee—The Elephant—Size of Tusks—The Hippopotamus—A Rogue Hippopotamus—The Rhinoceros—The Buffalo—Antelopes—List of Mammalia noticed on the Congo.NATURAL HISTORY. 375 CHAPTER XY. NATURAL HISTORY-----MAMMALS. It is strange that a region like the Lower Congo basin, so richly forested, should be so poor in monkeys. On the river Kwilu, a little to the north, and on the A- / Quanza to the south, the Simice are abundant- ly represented, and the surrounding conditions of nature are much the same. Nevertheless,just as with the snakes, you might journey up the Congo from the coast to Bolobo and not see a single monkey. The only A GALAGO.376 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. times I ever came across them myself—that is to say, in a wild state—were in the uninhabited Inga country, between Yivi and Isangila, in which district I have frequently seen a large brown Cercopithecus, whose species I could not determine, that makes a great unwieldy nest or platform of sticks on the higher branches of the trees, and sits on it, watching the passer-by. I have also been able to identify the existence of several well-known West African species by skins worn by the natives, or brought for sale. In this way I have ascertained the presence of the beautiful Diana monkey,* the Pluto,f the grivet,J the sooty mangabey,§ and the Colobus. j| It is possible that all West African genera are represented on the Congo, but they certainly do not show themselves in any abundance. About the mouth of the Congo, in the marshy forest country, monkeys seem to be much more common than up the river, to judge by the numbers brought for sale by the natives. Here I have seen in captivity many mandrills (Cynocephalus mormon) and drills (C. leucophceus). At the Dutch House in Banana there is, or was at the time of my visit, an admirable collection of West African mon- keys, including some very fine male and female mandrills. At Stanley Pool I have heard of baboons being seen, and the natives of Ki-mpoko tell strange tales of large man-like apes in the interior. The * Cercopithecus Diana. f C. Pluto. { C. griseo-viridis. § Cercocebus fuliginosus. I] Colobus % Probably Cynocephalus.NATURAL HISTORY. 377 gorilla and chimpanzee, which are entirely absent from the Lower Congo, probably approach, the Upper river above the falls. Certainly some large anthro- poid ape is known to the Ba-teke and Ba-yans , for they recognised with loud cries an engraving of the gorilla, and said frequently that he was found on the north bank of the river. This has been repeatedly told me by natives of Boldbd (who in speaking of the anthropoid ape used the word “ngina”) by chance visitors at Msuata, and also at Ki-mpoko and other places on Stanley Pool. The Baptist missionaries at Leopoldville have also heard of the gorilla from their pupils, who pick out his picture at once in Wood’s Natural History. I think, therefore, it is probable that the gorilla, chimpanzee, or both, or some kindred anthropoid ape, is found on the Upper Congo, and is possibly the same as the “ soko ” of the Lualaba. Periodicticus potto and arctocebus are curious tailless lemuroids which are also found about the Lower Congo. The former is constantly brought for sale by the natives at Banana Point. Parenthetically I might remark that there is no better ground for a collector than this latter place. Possibly its vicinity is no better provided with wild creatures than many other parts of the Congo, but here the natives are accustomed to capture and bring for sale everything they can lay their hands on. The galago lemur is very common about Stanley Pool, and the natives make “ karosses ” out of many of its skins joined together, with a fringe of tails.378 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. These are very handsome, but the natives resist every temptation to sell them unfortunately, or they would be very beautiful and costly souvenirs to bring home. On the Congo the leopard is the best-known and most dreaded of the Felidce. The natives often call him u great lord,” and when a leopard is killed or caught in a trap a day of public rejoicing is kept in the neighbouring villages, during which the slaves are absolved from all work. The lion, entirely absent from the coast region between the Congo and Sierra Leone, begins to be heard of at Stanley Pool; and farther into the interior there is no doubt that he exists. Some of the more influential chiefs here have lions’ skins. Makoko, the chief of the Batteke, received De Brazza seated on one of these, which has now, with other insignia of royalty, passed to his successor. The natives describe his appearance and imitate his roaring so well that there is no doubt that they have come into contact with the king of beasts. I have seen several villages on the north or western bank of the Congo barricaded carefully against the probable attacks of lions, and every night the live-stock was regularly driven into this stockaded fortress. Further, the Zanzibaris aver that once when they went to buy fowls from a village nearly opposite the Wa-buma, called G-anchu, they crept into their canoes at night and preferred to sleep on the water, because the lion roared so loudly in their proximity. Two or three species of tiger-cats are common,NATURAL HISTORY. 379 and destroy much poultry. One appears to be Felis serval; the others 1 have not had means of iden- tifying. The hyaena is often spoken of by the natives, and is, according to their account, the striped species. The civet-cat (Viverra) is prized for its scent-bag, but does not seem to be very common. Genets are constantly met with, and make charming house-pets. Their kittens are the most amusing little creatures imaginable, and exhibit more playfulness when young than any animal I know. The only Canis apparently present on the Congo is C. lateralis, the side-striped jackal. The black- backed jackal may possibly also be found, but I have never seen any sign of it. Potamogale, the curious otter-like insectivore, possibly inhabits the Upper river, to judge by the skins brought down by the natives. I have also seen Chrysochlorus, the golden mole. The manatee (Manatus) never passes, as far as we yet know, the cataracts of the Congo, but confines itself to the Lower river. A species of river dolphin, allied possibly to the Amazon species, is occasionally found in the Lower Congo and about the estuary. I have seen a skull alleged to belong to it. The elephant is very abundant on the Upper Congo; and every morning, as you ascend the river, traces of their last night’s devastations may be seen, for they seem to have a tendency towards wanton destruction and waste, being like parrots and380 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. monkeys in only eating about a quarter of the food they procure, and scattering the rest right and left with wanton caprice; So, on the islands of the Upper river, where the graceful borassus palms grow in their thousands, each blue-green palm with its cluster of orange fruit, the elephant is to be con- stantly seen—sometimes in broad daylight, but more often towards sunset—breaking his way through the pillar-like clusters, destroying many a beautiful palm for the sake of those orange-coloured stony dates of which he is so strangely fond. You may also see them, as I have, in the short hour of tranquil twilight, walking out in Indian file from the shelter- ing forest into the shallow parts of the river, where they squirt streams of water over their dry heated skins. Ordinarily it is at night-time, and above all when there is a moon, that the elephants come down to drink and bathe. Moreover, they are much more commonly seen on the Congo during the dry season, as then the many little forest brooks are likely to be dried up, and the elephants are compelled to incur greater publicity in their bath by seeking the great Congo. Although elephants are much more fre- quently met with above Stanley Pool, still in certain districts of the Lower river they are common, especi- ally in the cataract region. In the country opposite Isangila elephants have often been shot by members of Mr. Stanley’s expedition, and at the Livingstone mission station of Banza, Manteka, fifteen miles from the south bank of the Congo, elephants have atNATURAL HISTORY. 381 times trooped in long succession past the door of the mission-house, whilst the awe-struck missionaries shut themselves up securely within. The largest tusk I have yet seen on this river ■weighed 93 lb., and one from an elephant killed at the station of Msuata, by one of the Zanzibaris, weighed 79 lb. Of course I have heard of tusks of immense and almost fabulous weight, 180 lb. and 1921b. being modestly cited as examples of these prodigies ; but I require to see them weighed before believing such statements. The largest tusk I have ever seen in West Africa (at Old Calabar) weighed 140 lb., and looked a monster. Although the elephant is so abundant all along the Congo, from Stanley Pool towards the interior, yet the natives, as far as I have yet ascended the river, never dreamt of attacking him, but received all their ivory from the Bangala of the equator, who are also reported by the Ba-vansi to get theirs from a yet more distant tribe; so that I should not he surprised to learn that the same central region that sends its ivory to the Congo also supplies the merchants of the Shari and the Nile. The hippopotamus, as will have been gathered from the many previous references to its abundance, is one of the commonest, or at least one of the most noticeable, of the Congo mammalia. During the day-time this great amphibian prefers to frequent the large submerged sandbanks or “shallows” so common in the river. Here he generally stands382 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. upright, with his head and backbone rising above the water, and with many of his companions in a line. They yawn constantly, and the huge jaws are lifted in this action high above the water, displaying a pinky chasm of palate and throat. The grunting noise they make, and their great sighs of content- ment as they relapse into the tepid water after a momentary inspection of the advancing canoe, may be heard for a long distance across the stream. Hip- popotami are distinctly reddish in colour as seen in the water. They generally go in herds of nine and ten together, apparently consisting of one mature bull with four or five cows and their respective calves. The act of coition is said by the natives to take place invariably at night-time, as with pigs. Certainly the activity of the hippopotamus is very much greater after the sun has set, for it is then that he leaves the water and goes to feed amid the great rank grass-fields, where he remains until after sun- rise; indeed, if you are smart, you may intercept him there, cut off his retreat, kill him easily, for he offers a huge mark, and then go tranquilly to your breakfast, having first spoilt his. As to shooting them from a canoe on the water, it is a question the utility of which it is difficult to decide. If you do not fire at Hippo, he may come and just wreck you in a spirit of pure play; on the other hand, if you hit and do not kill outright, he will certainly make for you with a vengeance. Fortunately they do not swim very fast, and may easily be out-distanced by aNATURAL HISTORY. 383 skilfully-paddled canoe. The female hippopotamus is passionately attached to her young, and during the first few weeks of its life lives almost isolated from her fellows, generally on land; I imagine that this is because the baby hippopotami at an early age might form an easy prey to the voracious crocodiles. The males are much given to quarrelling even in the day- time, and, when fighting, utter strange boar-like squeals and grunts. It very often happens that an unfortunate bull, unable to obtain a mate, turns rogue, and lives a solitary life, seeking to wreak his spite on whatever may come in his way. There was one such beast that haunted the neighbourhood of Msuata. This malicious creature was the terror of the natives in the adjoining villages, for he would lie in wait, amid the rushes, for the canoes returning home with the fishermen at dusk, and then swim out silently under water and wreck them. When I was staying here we sent a canoe with letters to Stanley, who was farther down the river. The canoe started at early dawn, was wrecked close to the station by the demon hippopotamus, and one of its occupants was carried off by a crocodile. On the whole, the hippopotamus may be called the most dangerous animal to man on the river Congo. The rhinoceros is nowhere heard of in this district, nor is he, properly speaking, found in West Africa at all, merely penetrating into Southern Angola from the Zambesi and South African regions. The red river-hog (Potamocherus) is common, and its flesh is greatly appreciated by the natives.384 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. I have seen a skin of Hyomoschus, so apparently its range extends to the Congo. There is only one buffalo on this river, the red species, Bos* brachyceros. He is much inferior in size to his larger relatives, the buffalos of Central and Southern Africa, but he seems ordinarily quite as fierce, although at times he shows an opportune mildness of demeanour, as may be judged from the following incident which happened to Mr. Stanley when travelling between Yivi and Isangila. He was at the head of his caravan, and had been ascending' a nearly precipitous hill under a hot sun. When he arrived at the top, panting and ready to throw him- self down on the grass with fatigue and exhaustion, he suddenly found himself face to face with a red buffalo, who was staring at him in much astonish- ment. The buffalo lowered his head, and Mr. Stanley fired; but, although he was within a couple of yards of his mark, he was so agitated that he missed. The buffalo, however, merely turned round, and trotted off quietly. As the road in this country is continually taking you up and down abrupt hills, I always used to dread lest, on arriving at the top of some eleva- tion, utterly sick and faint with want of breath, I might find myself in a like predicament, and the buffalo less considerate. The Congo is very poor in antelopes, as compared with the less forested regions north and south. There are no true gazelles; Cervicapra and Nanotra- gus are found, and frequently go under that name. * Bub a Us 9NATURAL HISTORY. 385 There are several species of Cephalophi, and the large C. sylvicultrix is occasionally seen on the Lower river. Cobus antelopes are fairly common every- where, especially on the borders of streams. I give the head of one here, that I do not identify as yet with any of the numerous species of this large genus. A COBLS ANTELOPE. The hoofs of this Cobus do not offer any great pecu- liarities, except that they are perhaps somewhat long and wide apart. There is a Tragelaphus found on the Congo, T. gratus apparently, which has hoofs nearly six inches in length and very pointed. This creature, which is a dark dun-colour in the male, with white spots and stripes, inhabits the marshes 2 c386 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. and small streams, being much more at home in the water than on land. The horns are much used by the natives as trumpets (see illustration, p. 433). Other members of the Tragelaphidce are the kudus, which I have seen near Yivi, the harnessed antelope, common everywhere, and probably also the derbian, or striped eland. A porcupine is found all along the Congo, and its quills are used for many purposes by the natives. The Ba-yansi call it “ nkake ” or “ thunder,” from the noise it makes rattling its quills in anger. A large rodent, Aulacodes, is occasionally captured and eaten by the natives. Small side-striped squirrels abound in the woods, and an infinitude of murine species are met with, one of them a small black rat infesting the native villages. The curious Edentate, Manis, is also one of the Congo mammalia, though very rare and shy. I add to this short description of the mammals of this region a list of the species and genera either commonly met with or known to exist on the Congo, also inserting the names, with a query attached, of some forms of which the presence may be inferred, though as yet it cannot be proved. , , t Order I.—PRIMATES. Where observed. Family 1.—Simiidtie. Sub-Family 1.—Anthropoidse. Troglodytes gorilla (?) l Forest lands about Stanley Antbropopithecus chimpanzee (?) ) Pool and Upper Congo (?)NATURAL HISTORY. 387 Sub-Family 2.—PitTiecoidx. Cynocephalus mormon i „ leucophoeus j „ sphinx Cercopitherus griseo-viridis „ Diana „ Pluto „ talapoin „ petaurista „ ruber Cercocebus fuliginosus Where observed. Common in country round extreme Lower Congo. All over district. 77 77 77 77 77 77 Lower Congo, below falls. Order II. Family 1.—Lemuridee. Galago monteiri Family 2.—Loriidzel Perodicticus potto Arctocebus calabarensis LEMUKS. Upper Congo and coast. Swampy forest land round Lower river below Boma. Order III.—CHIKOPTERA. Sub-Order I.—Megachiroptera. Family 1.—Pteropodidse. Cynonycteris collar is Most parts. „ torquata „ „ straminea „ Epomophorus monstruosus Mouth of Congo and coast. „ gambianus Sub-Order II Family 1.—Bhinolophidse. Rhinolophus Landeri „ -ZEthiops (?) Sub-Family 1.—Phyllorhinse. Phyllorhina Cyclops (?) Stanley Pool. 2 c 2 .—Microchiroptera. Yivi. ?>388 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. Sub-Family 2.—Megaderminse. Megaderma frons (juv. ?) Sub-Family 3.—Nyderinse. Nycteris hispida (?) Family 2.—Vesjoertilionidse. Yesperugo sp. div. Vespertilio sp. div. Kerivoula africana Family 3.—Emballomridse. Taphozous sp. Where observed. Blown on to ship off Ka- binda. Yivi. All over. Stanley Pool and Upper river. Banana. Order IY.—INSECTIYOBA. Famil y 1.—rErinaceidse. Eiinaceus sp. div. Family 2.—Eotamogalidse. Potamogale velox Family 3.—Soricidse. Sorex sp. Family 4.—Talpidse. Chrysochloris capensis ? Common in cataract region. (Skins resembling those of this animal worn by natives of Upper river.) Yivi, Msuata, &c. (Skin apparently of this creature seen at Noki, in cataract region.) Order V.—CABNIVOBA. Family 1.—Felidse• Felis leo (Eeported to be present along Upper river. Native chiefs possess skins.)NATURAL HISTORY. 389 Family 1.—Felidse (cont.). Felis pardus Felis serval Felis servalina Felis chrysothrix Family 2.— Viverridee. Viverra oivetta Genetta pardina Nandinia binotata Herpestes fasciatus Crossarchus obscnrus Family 3.—Hysenidx. Hyaena striata (?) „ crocuta (9) Family 4.—Canidse. Canis lateralis Where observed. All over district; very com- mon. Upper and Lower river, (Observed skins at Msuata, but doubtless common else- where.) Upper river. Everywhere. Mouth of river and coast, piobably also Upper river. All over. Observed in cataract re- gion. (Both of these are mentioned from native reports.) All over. Order VI.—EDENTATA. Family 1.—Manidse. Manis tricuspis (Portion of skin seen at Ba- nana.) Order VII.—SIEENIA. Family 1.—Manatidee. Manatus africanus Lower river. Order VIII —PEOBOSOIDEA. Family 1.—Elephantidse. Elephas afiicaiius In certain parts of Lower river, and abundant on and above Stanley Pool.390 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. Order IX.—HYEAOES. Where observed. Family 1.—Hyracidse. Hyrax sp. (?) At Landau a, on coast; and on northern bank of Lower river. Qy., Hyrax genus? Order X.—KODENTIA. Family 1.—Sciuridse. Sciurus erythropus Family 2.—Muridse. Cricetomys gambianus Mus sp. div. Family 3.—Octodontidse. Aulacodes swindernianus Family 4.—Hystricidse. Hystiix cristata Athenusa africana Upper river. Lower river. Everywhere. Upper and Lower river. Everywhere. Bolobo and Upper river. Order XL—AETIODACTYLA. Fa mily 1.—Hijppojpotamidse. Hippopotamus amphibius Family 2.—Suidee. Potamochoerus pencillatus Family 3.—Tragulidee. Hyomoschus aquaticus Family 4.—Cavicornidoe. Sub-Family 1.—Bovinse. Bubalis brachyceros Everywhere in fresh water. Common on Upper river and met with on Lower river near the coast. Marshy country about lower river. All over.NATURAL HISTORY. 391 Sub-Family 2.—Tragelaphidse. Tragelaphus scriptus „ gratus „ kudu Oreas Derbii ? Sub-Family 3.—Oazellidse. Cephalophus Maxwellii „ sylvicultrix Neotragus sp. (?) Cervicapra sp, Cobus sp. Where observed. All over. Forest country above and below falls; almost entirely aquatic. Seen near Yivi and heard of on Upper river. (From horns shown in native villages and description given, perhaps found on Upper Congo.) Common everywhere. (Skin seen at Boma on Lower Congo.) (Skins seen on Lower Congo.) Common everywhere.CHAPTER XVI. THE PEOPLE OF THE CONGO. The Dwarf Race—The Upper Congo Races—The Mushirongos— The Bakongo—Conduct and Morality—Phallic Worship ■—The Nkimba—The Sacred Language—Art of Medicine— Domestic Life—Hairiness of African Races—Early Man ■—Clothing — Cicatrization — Hairdressing — Features — Character—Ceremonies—Education—Marriage—Burial— Food—Domestic Animals—Crops—Houses—Musical Instru- ments—Population—Progress.CHAPTER XVI. THE PEOPLE OP THE CONGO. The races of man that inha- bit the basin of the Congo throughout its entire course —certainly in all that part of it that I have visited-— belong almost exclusively to that great Bantu family which, when seen in its purest exemplars, the Ova-hererd and 0 va-mpo of the South-west, the tribes of .the Zambesi, ]. MU-YANSI. ' 2; MU-TEKE. 3. MTJ-SHI-KONGO.396 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. the people of the great lakes of Tanganyika and Nyassa, and the western shores of Yictoria Nyanza, and finally of the Upper Congo, is so distinct physically and linguistically from the divers negro, negroid, and Rami tic populations to the north of it, and from the Rottentot-Bushman group to the south. I have just written that the inhabitants of the Congo basin belong “ almost ” exclusively to this great homogeneous Bantu family. The qualifying “ al- most ” is introduced for two reasons. Firstly, because we know that about the Upper Congo and Lualaba there are certain dwarf races, encountered both by Stanley and Wissmann ; and besides this I have certainly seen myself two specimens of a dwarf type living as slaves among the Ba-yansi, and differing wholly from their masters in physical appearance. Still it is not quite certain that these dwarfs may not turn out to be a greatly degraded Bantu tribe. Language is of course by no means a true guide, as it may often be imposed upon a conquered or inferior race by stronger immigrants. Still it is curious that the only recorded words spoken by a specimen of the Wa-twa, the dwarf race to the west of the Lualaba that Stanley encountered,* should be pure Bantu in character. He is reported by the great traveller to have said, “ Mabi! mabi! ” for “ bad,” “ ki-rembo- rembo” for “lightning,” and “Firi Niambi” for “ God.” Now “ mabi ”—meaning bad, poisonous, wicked—is used right down the Congo as far as * See Stanley’s ‘Dark Continent,’ vol. ii. pp. 172-3.THE PEOPLE OF THE CONGO. 397 Stanley Pool. It is pure Ki-teke, for example, and is one of the commonest words employed. “ Ki- rembo-rembo ” seems to resemble certain Central African terms for “ finger,”* and by “ Ki-rembo- rembo, firi Niambi,” the dwarf probably meant “the finger of God,” for in using “Niambi” to ex- press “ God,” he simply employed the same word as the “Nyambi,” “Njambi/’ “ Ndyambi,” “Ndambi,” “ Nzambi,” of Angola, the Western Congo, and the Gaboon. The dwarf-tribes are reported as being, in the interior, very hairy. Now hairiness is a feature strangely absent from the Bushmen and Hottentots of the South, with whom it has been imagined that these dwarf races might have some distant relation- ships ; and, on the contrary, the Bantu tribes of the Congo are very hairy naturally, although most of them seem smooth-skinned, owing1 to artificial depila- tion. However, there is no doubt these dwarf races sufficiently differ from their neighbours to justify the qualification I have introduced into my assertion; and, besides this first reason, there is another,, in that the Congo tribes, nearing the coast, begin to lose their distinctive Bantu character, either through the degradation the coast climate seems to entail, or be- cause on their migration westward from the north-east Bantu focus, they originally met and mixed with, in the low-lying coast-lands, an earlier negro population. This latter supposition sometimes strikes me as being the true one, for the reason that, in such a littoral * Levibo, mu-liemo, remo, in divers Congo tongues.398 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. tribe as the Kabinda or Loango people there are distinctly two types of race. One—the Bantu—a fine, tall, upright man, with delicately small hands and well-shaped feet, a fine face, high, thin nose, beard, moustache, and a plentiful crop of hair; the other an ill-shaped, loosely made figure, with splay feet, high calves, a retreating chin, blubber lips, no hair about the face, and the wool on his head close and crisply curled. The farther you go into the interior, the finer the type becomes. Such men as the Ba- yansi of Bdlobd are perfect Greek statues in the development and poise of their forms, and two points about them contrast very favourably with most of the coast races, namely, their lighter colour—generally a warm chocolate—and their freedom from that offen- sive smell which is supposed, wrongly, to charac- terise most Africans. Many other details show the comparatively high status of the Upper Congo races: their small hands and feet, their well-shaped legs with full calves, and their abundant heads of hair. The principal tribes to be encountered in ascend- ing the Congo to the equator are,' commencing at the mouth, the Ka-kongo (Kabindas and others),- -Mug shi-rongos, Ba-kongo, Ba-sundi, Ba-bwende, Wa- buno, Ba-teke, Wa-buma, Ba-nunu, and Ba-yansi. Of these the Kabindas or Ka-kongo people have been already touched on ; and I might mention further that they are the Krumen of the south, hiring them- selves out in all directions as servants, sailors, labourers, and affecting more particularly the Por-399 THE PEOPLE OF THE CONGO. tuguese colonies, which they overrun as far as Mossamedes, invariably returning home after a time to spend their earnings. The Kabindas in their dealings with the Portuguese much resemble the relations between the Krumen of the Liberian coast and the English. Both races are largely influenced by their intercourse with the white people, and though in neither case has there been any conquest or previous occupation of territory, yet, on the one hand, every Kabinda knows more or less Portuguese, and few—I might almost' say no—Krumen of the coast are ignorant of English. I think the recent attempt of the Portuguese to establish themselves on the Ka-kongo coast, whatever may be the view taken by the great powers, will meet with the approval of the natives, who have so long served under their new masters abroad that they will take kindly to their dominion at home. On the southern bank of the Lower river, opposite the Kabinda people, the little-known country of Sonyo or Songo is inhabited by the Mu-shi-rongos, as the Portuguese call them—or more properly by the Ba-shi-kongo,* a degraded branch of the great Ba-kongo race which stretches in reality, though it undergoes some variations, from Kabinda to Kinrembo on the coast, and from Stanley Pool to Banana along the river. The Ba-kongo group is split up into several separate tribes, all of which, * The natives here frequently call themselves Ba-shi-wmyo, rongo being a corruption of Icongo,400 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. however, speak more or less the same tongue, which is sometimes called Fiote (meaning “ the common peo- ple ”), and more correctly Ki-shi-kongo. Amongst the Ba-kongo peoples, or inhabitants of the river along its lower course from Stanley Pool to the sea, there are the Ba-shi-kongo already mentioned, who probably re- present the van of the Bantu invasion in this direction, mixed with an antecedent negro population ; then the Ba-kongo proper, who have their centres about Sao Salvador and Pallaballa, the Basundi, the Sa- fa wende, and the Wa-buno. In the names of all these tribes but one, it is curious to notice that the old plural prefix, “ Ba,” is retained, whereas in the spoken tongue it has degenerated to “ Wa” and even “A.” The only exception is in the case of the Wa-buno, who are probably a later subdivision from the main stock. The Ba-kongo proper were once the ruling race over all this district, and founded the great Congo empire, which was discovered by the Portu- guese at the height of its prosperity, when its ruler’s sway extended far beyond the bounds of the Congo districts. Now a small amount of territory between Sao Salvador and the river is all that remains of a once powerful kingdom. The King of -Congo still reigns at Sao Salvador, and though he is not pre- cisely a Christian, he vacillates between the-teachings of the Baptist missionaries at his court,: and the dogmas of the Church of Rome, who has once more tried to resume her bygone sway over the Congo peoples. The Ba-kongo tongue, or more properlyTHE PEOPLE OF THE CONGO. 401 the Ki-shi-kongo, is spoken in greatest purity at Sao Salvador, and also about Pallaballa, and the southern bank of the river opposite Yivi. It is one of the most beautiful and flexible of the Bantu languages having all the softness of Italian, the precision o French, and the flexibility of English, three qualifica- tions, by-the-bye, well represented in the Portuguese, a language which is for some reason much more easily acquired by African races than any other European tongue. Portuguese has considerably influenced the vocabulary of Kongo, as might be imagined from the four centuries of intercourse between the two peoples. All things of new and exotic origin are expressed by slightly altered Portuguese words, such as meza for “ table ” (Port., meza), di-lalanza for “orange” (Port., laranja), sabol.a for “onion” (Port., cebola), and so on. This Portuguese inter- mixture is much greater at Sao Salvador and on the coast, and diminishes in proportion as we advance into the interior; still some Lusitanian words have strayed far into the continent from the western coast, and, like the four old muskets that Stanley met with in Rubunga, have taken centuries to enter the vocabularies of tribes to whom Portugal is utterly unknown. Thus, beyond Boldbo, the pine-apple, a Portuguese introduction from Brazil, is called bi-nasi or bi-nanasi, a corruption of the Portugo-Brazilian name, “ananas.” On the coast the pine-apple has been established a sufficient time for it to have changed and varied its name, but among the 2 B402 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. . Ba-yansi the old term has slowly journeyed onward with the extension of the plant. The Ba-kongo of Pallaballa are a finer race than the degraded negroid Mu-shi-kongo or Mu-so-rongo of the coast. Yet they do not display an entirely Bantu type, such as one sees in the Ba-yansi of the Upper river. Their skin, however, is not the dead coal-black of the coast tribes, but is often a warm chocolate or ruddy brown. They do not practise much personal adornment, either by cicatrization, tatooing or painting the skin with divers pigments. They are naturally a hairy race, especially about the face—some of the chiefs wearing copious beards, whiskers and moustache—but on the body the pile is plucked out from the age of puberty, otherwise their bodies would be partially covered with short curly hair. The two front incisor teeth in the upper jaw are occasionally chipped, but this is not a regular custom, as it is farther up the river. Also among the Ba-bwende of Manyanga and the surrounding district large nose-rings are passed through the septum of the nose, and earrings are frequently worn. Circumcision is everywhere practised on the males, and will be treated of in its place as a semi-religious rite. In character the Ba-kongo are indolent, fickle, and sensual. They dislike bloodshed as a general rule, and, save for certain superstitious customs, are rarely cruel, showing kindness and gentleness to animals. When their passions are excited, however,THE PEOPLE OF TEE CONGO. 403 by fear of witchcraft or a wish to revenge grave injuries, they can become very demons of fanatical rage ; and the people, that in their calmer moments will shudder at an abrasion of the skin in a friend or neighbour, will, when he is convicted of sorcery, leap and shout with frenzied joy around his fiery stake while he frizzles alive. Witch or wizard-burning (as a rule there are more witches killed) is very common among the debased tribes of the coast, and the poison-ordeal, already mentioned in Chapter III., prevails largely over the Lower Congo lands. In fact, in many a Ba-konga village, life must be rendered miserable by the constant accusations of sorcery. At Pallaballa, for instance, for every one —child, woman, or man—who dies, somebody is sus- pected of having caused the death by supernatural means, and the horrid old nganga or “ medicine man,” who holds the inquest over the corpse, is called upon to detect the guilty person, and generally fixes upon those possessed of worldly goods, in order that they may buy him off from his fell accusation. Should the accused however, either through poverty or the force of public opinion, be unable to evade the charge, he or she is compelled to take the casca, the infusion of a poisonous bark; and according as the potion is regulated in strength by the nganga, so the suspected tamperer with witchcraft either vomits up the poison and recovers, dies at once from its effects, or retains it on the stomach and does not die, in which latter case the natives have rare sport in 2 d 2404 A JOURNEY IP THE RIVER CONGO. hacking the ill-doer to pieces with their blunt knives, or in “ cooking ” their victim over a slow lire. And yet when the fears and passions of these people are not roused they are gentle and effeminate, with many expressive words with which to caress and sympathise. I have said just now that they are immoral—or, at least sensual—but this is hardly to be taken in the same sense as the word is applied to vicious European communities. Their immorality rather arises from excess of uxoriousness than from a love of vice. Unnatural crimes are unknown among them where they have not come under European influence, and they have no word in their language to correspond with what is a common term of almost playful opprobrium among the English lower classes. Adultery is not uncommon, and its penalties vary from capital punishment to a trifling fine, according to the station of the offender or the district he lives in. The women have little regard for their own virtue, either before or after marriage, and but for the jealousy of the men there would be promiscuous intercourse between the sexes. Among the Ba-kongo women it is thought something honourable and praiseworthy to merit the position of a white man’s mistress, and a woman thus distinguished from her sisters is regarded with respect and consideration by her fellow countrymen. Moreover, though the men evince some marital jealousy amongst themselves, they are far from displaying anything but satisfactionTHE PEOPLE OF THE OONGO. 405 when a European is induced to accept the loan of a wife, either as an act of hospitality or in consideration of some small payment. Unmarried girls they are more chary of offering, as their value in the market is greater ; but it may be truly said that among these people womanly chastity is unknown, and a woman’s honour is measured by the price she costs. On the Lower Congo as far as Stanley Fool, over a region extending slightly beyond the domain of the Ba-kongo proper, phallic worship in various forms prevails. It is not associated with any rites that might be called particularly obscene ; and on the coast, where manners and morals are particularly corrupt, the phallus cult is no longer met with. In the forests between Manyanga and Stanley Pool it is not rare to come upon a little rustic temple, made of palm-fronds and poles, within which male and female figures, nearly or quite life-size, may be seen with disproportionate genital organs, the figures being intended to represent the male and female principle. Around these carved and painted statues, as described in Chapter VI., are many offerings of plates, knives, and cloth, and frequently also the phallic symbol may be seen dangling from the rafters. There is not the slightest suspicion of obscenity in all this, and any one qualifying this worship of the Generative power as obscene does so hastily and ignorantly. It is a solemn mystery to the Congo native, a force but, dimly understood; and, like all mysterious natural' manifestations—like the great rushing river that406 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. upsets his fishing canoes and has the power to drown him—like the blazing lightning, the roaring thunder and the shrieking wind, it is a power that must be propitiated and persuaded to his good. Connected, no doubt, with this phallic worship are the Nkimba ceremonies which are met with on the Lower Congo between Isangila and the coast, and which in varying forms may be traced among the “ manhood-initiation ” rites found among most Bantu peoples. The Nkimba are in all probability males under- going circumcision and an initiation into the rites of marriage, and this secret confraternity is generally composed of youths oi va- rying ages, between twelve and fifteen years. Occasion- ally older men may be seen amongst them, who for some reason have possibly evaded the initiation at an earlier age. These cere- monies last for two native years (twelve months), and there are three or more stages of initiation, said to be marked by changes in their grass coverings. They chalk themselves all over a ghastly white with some argillaceous earth, and do not wash once during their A NKIMBA.THE PEOPLE OF THE CONGO. 407 six months’ probation, though they often renew the white colouring. During the whole period of their initiation they live like the lilies of the field, being sustained at the common expense of the village or community. The Nkimba in a great measure live separately from their fellow townspeople, and seem to avoid coming into contact, above all, with the females and children of the community, whose pre- sence, from the fact of their being without the arcana of sacred mystery, is considered undesirable and contaminating. Consequently, when the Nkimba are on the road they announce their presence by a sort of drumming noise like “ dur-r-r ! ” and then all strangers—all who are not members of their freemasonry—are obliged to clear out of the road. Should they decline to do so they are set upon by the Nkimba, and soundly beaten with the wands these ugly creatures carry. Ugly creatures indeed they are, and they prompt the constantly-recurring question—“ Why does man so often make his re- ligious ceremonies frightful ? ” In addition to the white chalky covering or paste which covers the naturally sooty skins of the Nkimba novitiates, they also decorate their heads, whenever they can aff'01 d it, with a curious wicker crown or cage, to which little gaudy strips of scarlet cloth or the feathers of bright-coloured birds are affixed. Then round their waists is a wide wooden hoop or girdle, often quaintly decorated with incised patterns, and from this de- pends a long and dense skirt of dried grass reaching408 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. nearly to the ankles, and being often extended from the body by means of an inner framework like a crinoline. Sometimes there are also tufts and sheaves of grass hanging from the shoulders or the neck, but this addition, I believe, marks the attainment of an advanced grade in initiation. A curious part of these semi-religious rites is the acquiring of a sacred mysterious language, which is taught by the nganga, who presides over these cere- monies, to the disciples who are being circumcised and gathered into the confraternity. This language is never taught to females, and as yet no European has been able to examine its nature. I have heard men discoursing in it, as they do freely, and there were most of the Bantu prefixes and concords recog- nisable in their speech, though the actual words were unfamiliar. - It might possibly be some older and more archaic form of Bantu language conserved for religious purposes—like the Sanskrit, the old Sclavonic, and the Latin—or it may be nothing more than an arbitrary transmogrification of words such as is found in the Mpongwe,* or in such artificial dialects as the Ki-nyume of Zanzibar, j * “ Among the elders of the tribe there is a form of speech called the ‘ Ewiria, or Dark Sayings/ which cannot be under- stood by the uninitiated, although the council may be held in open assembly. It is formed by changing words in an arbitrary manner, and to no one is the secret confided who has not reached twenty-five years, and then under an oath of secrecy.”—Vide Cust’s ‘Modern Languages of Africa/ p. 419, vol. ii. f Vide Steere’s ‘ Handbook to the Ki-suahili Language.’TEE PEOPLE OF TEE CONGO. 409 A Nkimba before initiation is called “ Mungwala,” and afterwards “ Tungwa.” I cannot guess at the etymology of these terms in any way, unless a sug- gestion of a far-off relationship with “ Longwa ”—• to be-taught, to learn—be of any use. These Nkimba are not met with among the Congo tribes farther inland than Isangila. Between the latter places and Manyanga there are many eunuchs in the large villages, who seem to be attached to a vague phallic worship, with which is intricately connected a reverence for the moon. When the new moon appears, dances are performed by the eunuchs, who sacrifice a white fowl, which must always be a male—in its honour. The bird is thrown up into the air and torn to pieces as it falls to earth. I was told that in former days a human victim was offered up on these occasions, but that in later times a white fowl had been substituted. Naturally, with an imaginative people that refers the explanation of all physical problems to the action of anthropomorphic spirits, diseases are supposed to be due to the malice of demons, who are represented materially, as the embodification of the malady they incite. There is a small-pox bogey, a fever-spirit, and in certain temples about Manyanga you may come across a loathsome representation of the foul demon who is supposed to have inflicted syphilis on the unhappy natives, who bring offerings to his shrine with a view of appeasing his cruel ravages. Little or no notion of the healing art is present;410 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. medicines are represented by vague potions and powders, delivered without any reference to their antiseptic qualities, but merely in regard to their hidden potentialities of magic. The patient under- goes such heroic treatment at times that he may be cured on the principle that one ill drives out another. His friends also, by offering at the shrine, by the intercession of the nganga, by loud wailing supplica- tions, seek to appease the disease demon’s malice ; while on the other hand, with the instinctive feeling that it is “ somebody’s ” fault and that u some one ” ought to be punished, they seek to find out who has, by foul witchcraft, egged the evil spirit on to this untoward manifestation of his power. The nganga is of course foremost in this research, and the culprit he fixes on is either mulcted of a heavy fine or, in serious cases, where the accused is poor, is compelled to pass through the “ poison ” ordeal with varying result. These Ba-kongo people do not seem to suffer from disease to a greater degree than most uncivilised races. Nature is still allowed to exercise a happy selection in the survival of the fittest, and if a child is weakly no efforts are made to save its life. The result is that the physically strong are in the majority, while, en revanche, the most cunning secure the greatest number of wives and leave the largest families. The nganga of every community is generally a mean-looking, perhaps puny man, but a glance at his sharp eye will show you that he excels his moreTHE PEOPLE OF THE CONGO. 411 brawny neighbours in mental capacity; ergo, the “ medicine-man ” of the village has a large harem, and leaves many descendants. The daily life of these people must be marked by terrible uniformity. They keep no calendar, and their vague traditions are perpetuated by word of mouth. It is almost like the life of the forest; great calamities, sudden shocks are soon hidden and forgotten, and profound emotions exist not, while fleeting troubles and joys leave little impression on the vacuous mind, which lives and thinks and acts but for the hour. Before the dawn they begin to grumblingly awake from their sleep, and stir the deadened ashes of the fire into a warming glow. Then they sit on their haunches, with their hands crossed over their shoulders for the sake of warmth, the early morning being the coolest time in Africa; and, whilst the men yawn and rub their eyes at the growing light, the women smack their babies, scold their bigger children, and open their minds on many disagreeable subjects to their lords and masters. Sunrise, that eternal resurrection that gladdens the most brutish soul in Nature, puts an end to these peevish col- loquies. The women issue from the huts with morning greetings to their neighbours, and set about their household duties, while the men polish their weapons and implements of the chase, and set out to visit their bird-snares and fish-traps; or they pack their goods for a neighbouring market, and trudge412 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. out to their destination ere the sun shall have risen high. When they have their regular meals it is hard to say. The children always seem to he gnawing something, and the women are constantly preparing food. I fancy the adults mostly feed at about an hour after sunrise, and just take snacks during the day, perhaps finishing up with another meal at night. After the morning repast the women go out to cultivate the fields or turn their hands to some industrial employment, such as weaving, making pottery, or constructing coops for their hens and chickens. At noon-time all rest in the shade of their verandahs and indulge in tobacco-smoking, or pass the sultry hours in hair-dressing, personal decoration and friendly gossip. As the sun declines some form of active work is resumed, and after sunset, when the men have returned to the village, dancing and drinking of palm-wine begin, and are kept up, failing other amusement—such as burning a person suspected of scorcery—until a late hour of the night, when all retire, with considerable hilarity and loud talking, to .the slumber from which they will wake up very cross the next morning. I have given a brief description of the tribes inhabiting the Lower Congo from Stanley Pool to the coast. At Stanley Pool however, just as one uueets with new forms of butterflies, birds, and plants, so there is a decided change in the type of man and in the-language he speaks.THE PEOPLE OF THE CONGO. 413 On the northern bank of the river the Ba-teke extend their range beyond the Pool westwards, to the Jne or Gordon Bennett river, and perhaps even farther into the confines of the Ba~bwende, a tribe speaking a dialect of the Kongo language of the Lower river; bnt on the south bank of the river the Ba-teke colonies do not commence until we arrive at the district of Ki-ntamo, on the western shores of Stanley Pool. : idSsfcx A M-BTTMA. A M U-Y ANSI. The Ba-teke, Wa-buma, and Ba-yansi, all tribes of the Upper river,* though they differ each from the other in certain characteristics, and markedly in tongue, yet offer so many mutual points of resem- blance and of dissimilarity to the Ba-kongo people below Stanley Pool that they may well he described * By Upper and Loiver river I always mean the Congo above and below Stanley Pool.414 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. together in their general features and separated in this description from the races of the Lower river. These upper Congo people betray little or no intermixture of “ negro ” blood. They are pure “ Bantu,” and consequently greatly resemble other unmixed races of the same stock, such as the Ova-mbo, the Ba-lunda, and the people of Tan- ganyika and Niassa. They differ from the more negroid Ba-kongo in having skins of a chocolate brown, and, above all, in their abundant growth of hair. The beard, whiskers, and moustache are always present, but are generally, in common with the hair of the eyebrows and the eyelashes, plucked out, from a prejudice against cultivating hair anywhere hut on the top of the head. Only in chiefs, as a rule, is the heard allowed to grow, and that only partially. So also on the body, the pile, which would naturally be abundant, and in parts even thick, is remorselessly pulled out by the roots, these people assiduously cultivating that nakedness of skin to which mankind has ever been so partial. As a fact, most African races are disposed to be hairy, especially on iheir bodies,* but in so many tribes does the practice exist of rigorously pulling out every hair that makes its appearance, that one conceives the idea that Africans are devoid of hair * This may be said quite as much of the true negro as of the Bantu. I have seen Krumen on the Gold Coast whose bodies were quite covered with fine curly pile, especially on the breast, stomach, thighs, and back.THE PEOPLE OF THE CONGO. 415 on their bodies. The only races I know of4n which I have failed to detect any trace of pile, or even beard, without being able to explain their absence by the reason that the people prefer naked- ness, are the Bushmen and Hottentots; and yet these are supposed to be the lowest types of man in Africa. It would be interesting to know how this would be explained. Man in all ages and climes seems to have cultivated a bare skin as a personal attraction. The ancient Greeks and Romans practised the same depilatory processes that are in vogue amongst Africans of the present day. Priests have thought it pleasing to their gods to live smooth-shaven ; and the courtiers and counsellors of many an earthly sovereign have trimmed their free-growing beards and curtailed their locks, to acquire a greater air of grave and stately bearing. It is indeed curious that hairiness has always been considered as a sign of ferocity and brutal force, and that soldiers should be allowed to wear the moustache which a rigid fashion might deny to a civilian. Human nakedness in incipient in the baboons, and in their relative the gelada monkey. These crea- tures expose their naked parts with evident pride, turning them with complacency to the gaze of foes and friends ; not, as has been thought, in a spirit of insult, but rather as the peacock erects his train and rattles his quills to ravish and overawe the looker- on. So in bygone ages the females of incipient man416 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. contemplated with, satisfaction the growing nakedness of their husbands, much in the same spirit as the she-gelada monkey admires and strokes with a tender touch the great bald patch on the breast of her mate. The hands and feet and face are naked in most monkeys of the old world, the hinder parts in ba- boons are bald and brilliant. Thenceforth, as some aspiring ape struggled on towards humanity, it was rather a gradual diminution of hairiness that super- vened than absolute nakedness, for few men’s bodies and limbs in a natural state are devoid of hair. When man had lost all or nearly all the hair which in so many mammals becomes developed into striking ornaments in the male sex, he had attained a suffi- cient degree of intelligence to abandon the slow workings of nature, and to call in the aid of art or in ministering to his inherent vanity and in decorating his person so as to render it ntore attractive in the eyes of his women. The beard and moustache, though already existing in less pronounced forms in the higher apes, received a slight ulterior develop- ment in man, but beyond this there was little attempt made to secure any striking physical attraction or any analogous development of epidermal colour or excrescence such as we meet in many monkeys.# On the contrary, man seems to have rather degene- rated into physical uniformity and insignificance. * As for instance the bine-ribbed cheeks of the mandril, the brilliantly-colonred genital organs of other baboons, the mane of the gelada and colobns, &c.THE PEOPLE OF THE CONGO. 417 Looked at from the point of view of an antlered stag or a graceful leopard, a naked man seems a poor sort of creature. The higher beauty of his well-moulded form, and his marked adaptation to his career, is only perceptible to the aesthetically- educated minds of his most highly developed examples. In the very early days of the history of our genus, during that great struggle, not only for existence, but at the same time for dominion, from which some one of the many great apes emerged as man, there must have been little desire or leisure to originate physical adornments by sexual selection. All our energies were at that period directed to the bare necessities of life, to the procuring of food, shelter from enemies, or withstanding the adverse effects of altered climates by artificial means. As, however, these pursuits had the effect of developing and vastly strengthening man’s faculties of thought and reflec- tion, so when he had attained such a position of pre- dominance that his existence as a species was assured, the development of physical charms had less attrac- tion for him than it possesses for the lower mammalia. Sexual selection henceforth was applied more pro- minently to mind than to body, and the most cunning men secured the greatest number of wives. At the same time, though it has lost its old predominance, bodily beauty still exercises, and has exercised greatly in the past, an influence on the minor physical characteristics of mankind. The role of arbiter in 2 e418 A JOTJBNEY UP, TEE RIVER CONGO. such matters somewhat changed hands. It was the men that began to choose the women, and not the women, always, who had the power of selecting their husbands. The result of this has been that, in one or more of the highest varieties of man, a sort of feeble attempt on the part of the weaker sex has been made to develop attractive facial colouring, and a greatly exaggerated occipital mane. But men or women alike, in their efforts to secure admiration and to satisfy their personal vanity, have had impatient recourse to artificial means of making themselves attractive, awe-inspiring, or ridiculous. Clothing was first adopted as a means of decoration rather than from motives of decency. The private parts were first adorned with the appendages that were afterwards used by a dawning sense of modesty to conceal them.* Clothing also, under climatic influences, derived a greater develop- ment than would have arisen from mere motives of decency alone; and, further, the love of adornment, with the desire of producing an attractive or imposing appearance superadded, has induced man at various times to make himself a very human jackdaw arrayed in the borrowed furs and plumes of his fellow- vertebrates. The ermine of a Lord Chancellor may seem a long way removed from the monkey-skin * Among certain savage races of man at the present day— to wit, the negroes of Portuguese Senegambia, the New Cale- donians, and certain Papuan tribes—the virile member is conspicuously decorated with bands of bright cloth or small shells.THE PEOPLE OF THE CONGO. 419 caps and mantles of an old African “ medicine-man/’ just as the ostrich feathers worn by a court beauty in England appear to have nothing in common with the parrot-plumes that a Ba-yansi girl sticks in her hair, but all these extraneous decorations are prompted by the . same motives. Amongst the natives of tropical Africa, however, clothing is irksome and out of place. A scrap of grass-cloth suffices for the claims of the most prudish modesty. Skins and feathers and shells, ivory, metal, and wood, are all pressed into the people’s service to decorate their persons, and still an amount of naked skin remains uncovered and unadorned. Con- sequently on the .Upper Congo, where aesthetic taste is more developed than among the less sensitive tribes of the Lower river and coast, there exist many contrivances for supplementing the insufficiency of nature with the finish of art. The skins of the Ba-teke, Ba-yansi, and Wa-buma are frequently ornamented with broad lines and patterns of pigment, the designs generally following the contours of the body. The colours used are generally white, yellow, red, brown and black, which are obtained respectively from lime, ochre, “ camwood ” and charcoal. This-w camwood,” which I have already mentioned as the bark of one or more species of Baphia (illus- trated on page 113), also supplies the Congo people with a red dye like henna, with which their nails, hair and entire persons are occasionally crimsoned. Besides this coloration of the skin the surface of the 2 e 2420 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. epidermis is often varied with incised marks. These are principally tribal in character. Thus the Ba-teke are always distinguished by five or six striated lines across the cheek-bone, while the Ba- yansi scar their foreheads with a horizontal or vertical AN EXAMPLE OF CICATRIZATION. band. In the portrait of King Ibaka, at the begin- ning of the book, it may be noticed that there is this line on the forehead, and, besides, a broad band of white paint across the cheek. The Wa-buma do not seem, as a rule, to mark the face with any scars, hut, in common with most of the Upper Congo tribes, they practise “ cicatrization,”THE PEOPLE OF THE CONGO. 421 which means raising lumps or wheals of skin by slitting it with a knife and rubbing some irritant into the incision. This circatrization is practised right along the course of the Congo up to the Stanley Falls. I give here an illustration of the torso of a Mu-ngala from the equator (the only specimen of his race I have ever seen) who had nearly the whole of his body thus ornamented. The Upper Congo people also spend a great deal of time and trouble in dressing their hair. Some- times the head is shaved all but a small portion of the occiput, on which the hair is allowed to grow long and luxuriantly. On the fore part the chevelure is mixed with clay and grease, and is flattened down to the shape of the cranium, while behind is a fuzzy mane like an aureola round the head. But the infinitude of modes in hair-dressing is a subject that demands too much space for detailed description, so, merely noting that the hair is finer and less crimpy in the newly-born children than in the adults, and that it is generally more abundant in men than in women, I will pass on to other physical features worthy of note. In the Ba-teke the brow is often prominent, and the frontal ridge very slightly marked. The nose is generally flattened, and always very broad at the nostrils; occasionally, however, one meets with an individual of this tribe possessing a high-bridged, somewhat hooked nose. The Ba-yansi have as a rule better-shaped noses422 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. than either the Wa-buma or the Ba-teke. The mouth in all these people is a variable feature. Sometimes there are thin, well-shaped lips, at other times the mouth is a regular “ nigger’s,” with a wide gape and everted lips. The teeth are always perfect as regards shape and white- ness. There is absolute regularity in their den- tition. The canines never project beyond the other teeth.: The chin, like the mouth .and the nose, varies greatly in indi- viduals, but there is a great predominance of strong firm ones over those of a w7eak and re- ceding type. The eyes are much “ clearer ” than in most African races, and the white is less bloodshot. The ears are rather large. The figures of these peo- ple are admirably modelled and developed, so that many of them, with their shining glossy skins and their simple nakedness, seem like antique statues cast in bronze. In certain examples the arms areTHE PEOPLE OF THE CONGO. 423 very lo-ng, as in this Ba-teke woman here illus- trated, hut it is not a universal characteristic of the race. The women usually have better-shaped busts than in the Coast people, and in many of them the nipples have a curious tendency to turn up, and not hang down. The hands and feet are small and well proportioned. . The second toe is the longest. In character the races of the Upper Congo are kindly, lighthearted and full of sensibility to beauty. They are fond of colour and of music, and indulge in dancing that has much meaning and grace. They are decidedly amorous in disposition, but there is a certain poetry in their feelings which ennobles their love above the mere sexual lust of the negro. Husbands are fond of their own wives, as well as of those of other people, and many a pretty family picture may be seen in their homesteads, when the father and mother romp with their children, or sit together in a munching group round the supper-pot. The absence of gloominess in these pleasant folk may be partly accounted for the absence or dearth of vexatious superstitions. Among them there is, as far as I can ascertain, no ordeal for witchcraft, they are not pestered with initiative ceremonies, indeed, these people are positively lacking in “ medicine men ”—in the “ nganga,” of almost universal sway. Whenever this personage is needed for the per- formance of a few obligatory ceremonies, or for424 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER OONQO. the adjudication of disputed legal questions, he is borrowed from the tribes of the interior. The Ba- yansi, for instance, generally make use of the ngan- gas of the Ba-nunu, a tribe to the south of them. Jn fact these people may be said to be almost without religion. They still retain a mild form of ancestor-worship, and they have a shadowy idea of a god, but, when you ask his name, they always employ a term that is identical with heaven or sky. They have a vague idea of life after death, and the slaves that are slain at a dead chiefs grave are intended to serve him as an escort on his mysterious journey. When a child is born no particular ceremonies take place. The mother some three months before its birth has lived apart from her husband, and when the time of delivery approaches she is attended by the old women of her acquaintance. Circumcision is performed twelve days after birth by the “ medicine-man,” or in his absence by the chief. Hot water is applied continuously to the part till the wound is cicatrized. Occasionally circumcision is avoided in early youth, either through the caprice of the mother, or because there is no doctor to perform the ceremony. But sooner or later the individual is obliged to submit himself to the operation, and in this case, if he be more or less adult, he is placed close to an immense fire after the excision has been made, and remains crouched before the heat for two or three days until hisTHE PEOPLE OF THE CONGO. 425 wound is healed. Circumcision is performed with a sharp knife. The child is not often weaned until it is two or three years old and all its teeth have come through the gums. All the time it is being suckled the mother remains apart from her husband. When the child is quite young it is taken down to the river and taught to swim by its parents. If it is a girl it is early instructed in the management of household affairs, and learns to cook and otherwise assist its mother, while the little boys make small bows and arrows, paddle miniature canoes, and ambitiously imitate all the pursuits of manhood. Marriage is a mere question of purchase, and is attended by no rejoicings or special ceremony. A man procures as many wives as possible, partly because they labour for him, and also because soon after one wife becomes with child she leaves him for two or three years until her baby is weaned. It is impossible to reckon with any accuracy their average duration of life, but, judging from the experience of missions long established on the coast, I should think the people aged quickly, and that few lived beyond sixty or sixty-five years. When a slave dies, he is “ chucked ” without more ado into the river or the bush; but when a person of any consequence departs this life, he is generally buried under the hut he lived in (which is afterwards abandoned), and in his grave are put quantities of cloth, beads, plates, knives, cowries,426 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. and other tilings to enable him to start afresh in a new life. The plates are generally broken, and the knives bent, in order to 64 kill ” them, so that they too may “ die,” and go to the land of the spirits. When a great chief dies four or more slaves are laid trans- versely in his grave, and his body is placed on the top. The slaves are not buried alive, but are hung first. After the death of a married man, his widow or widows are shut up in his house (underneath which he is buried) for a period of fifty days, during which time they keep their faces blackened with charcoal. The food of the Upper Congo people is more mixed in character than that of the natives on the Lower river. While their diet is largely vegetable, and bananas, ground-nuts, manioc, Indian corn, and sweet potatoes are staple articles of food, yet other elements vary their repasts. A river like the Congo naturally abounds in fish, and the riverine natives consume quantities of a food at once appetising and easily procured. One tribe on the Upper Congo makes quite a traffic in smoked fish, which they sell to the resident tribes along the banks or a little way in the interior. It is a most common sight to see a group of these Ba-yansi people established temporarily on a great sandbank in the middle of the river, smoking the newly-caught fish over immense wood fires. I have often bought and eaten these smoked fish (which are generally large specimens of the Percidce family), and I can only say, provided you get one that is notTHE PEOPLE OF THE CONGO. 427 about a year old and riddled with worms, they are delicious—yes, emphatically delicious—for the smoking over some fragrant cedar-like wood lends a flavour of its own to the solid white flesh. Some- times, too, the natives seem to soak them in brine before submitting them to the smoking process, and this gives an agreeable taste of well-cured haddock to the already appetising fish. The natives generally fish with a kind of seine of different shapes. Some- times there is a net like a huge butterfty net, only with a more oblong aperture and a very stout handle, but this is only used for small fry, while monster fish are usually speared. The Ba-teke, who do a little amateur fishing in a lazy way, row out to one of the many floating islets of grass and water-plants, round which the fishes congregate, and, poising well their little lances, harpoon the fish as they nibble at the roots just below the surface, gobbling the larvae and water insects that cling to them. The little Ba-teke boys fish from the hanks with prettily-made rods, lines, and floats. Then there are the most ingenious basket-work traps of every size, and it is with these that the majority of the fish is caught. Also the mouth of every narrow bay is netted, so that the fish in the dry season cannot escape, hut fall easy victims to omnivorous man. Snares are made for birds, and the smaller mammals are not despised as food, rats especially being sought for; hut they are chary of hunting large game. The hippopotamus is occasionally428 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. ' pursued and harpooned, hut more out of revenge for the mischief lie wreaks on their canoes than from a liking for his flesh. The domestic animals of the natives also supply them with food, but they are not so meat-eating as the tribes of Eastern or Southern Africa, who possess their great herds of cattle. On the Upper Congo the ox is unknown, and his old classical Bantu name, A CONGO SHEEP. “ ng’ombu,” or “ ng’ombe,” is applied by the Ba-yansi to the buffalo. The sheep is rarely met with beyond Stanley Pool; still it is known and named. It belongs to the Central African type—a hairy sheep, with small horns, and a magnificent mane in the ram, which extends from the chin to the stomach, and greatly resembles the same appendage in the aoudad, or wild, sheep of Northern Africa. ITHE PEOPLE OF THE CONGO. 429 do not believe, however, that this domestic sheep of Central Africa had its origin in the “mouflon a manchettes ” of Algeria. On the contrary, the ewe, which has no mane, and the young maneless rams, exactly resemble certain breeds of Persian sheep, like which they are pied black and white in colour. The goat of the Congo is a little compactly built animal, short on the legs and very fat. The females make excellent milch goats, and their milk is a most delicious and wholesome addition to one’s diet. Unfortunately, they run dry after three months’ milking, and the only way to keep up a constant supply of this grateful fluid is to keep four or five of them at once, and arrange that they all kid at different times. The natives, however, never take this precaution, as they think it disgusting to drink milk. The general type of the dog on the Upper Congo (on the Lower river it is much mixed with European races introduced by the Portuguese) is simply the pariah dog of India and the East over again, with a look of the dingo and the wild dog of Sumatra superadded. It has a foxy head, prick ears, a smooth fawn-coloured coat, and a tail slightly inclined to be bushy, and is to my thinking a very pretty creature. They have one admirable point in their character in that they never hark, giving vent only, when very much moved, to a long wail or howl. Towards Europeans they are disposed to be very snappish and uncertain, but the attachment between430 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. these dogs and their African masters is deep and fully reciprocated. They are considered very dainty eating by the natives, and are indeed such a luxury that by an unwritten law only the superior sex—the men—are allowed to partake of roasted dog. The cats on th.e Congo are lean, long-legged, and ugly, and offer every diversity and variety of colour. Tabbies, however, are the most commonly seen. These cats are splendid mousers, or rather ratters, and help to rid the native villages of the small black rats which infest them. The domestic pig is largely kept, and its flesh much eaten by the Congo people. I do not agree with the opinion of those who surmise that the pig was originally introduced into West Africa and the Congo regions by the Portuguese. The pig, in a domestic state, extends among the Bantu races right across Africa, and everywhere possesses a similar name. The pig in Ki-yansi is called “ ngulu,” and in the Ki-swahili of Zanzibar is known as “ nguruwe,” or “ nguluwe.” It is a black, bristly, high-shouldered beast, very like the Irish greyhound pig. Like most African domestic animals, it probably had an Asiatic origin. The fowl on the Congo is small and mongrel-like. It is however very productive ; and, as its eggs are rarely eaten by the natives, but are. alio wed to be hatched by the hen that lays them, the domestic fowl swarms in the villages, and is a never-failing article of merchandise.THE PEOPLE OF TILE CONGO. 431 The Muscovy duck has penetrated to the Upper Congo from the coast, where it was introduced by the Portuguese in the seventeenth century. Among the most usually cultivated plants and trees may be mentioned the Cajanus inclicus, the manioc, the sweet potato, maize, ground-nuts, to- bacco, the sugar-cane, the banana and the oil-palm. Among other Portuguese introductions that have reached them from the West Coast are the pine- apple, the orange, lime, papaw, and a small degene- rated cabbage. It is curious to remark that, while nearly all the domestic animals of Africa can be traced to an Asiatic origin, the cultivated plants of this region should in a great measure be introductions from America. It is difficult to imagine how the people could have lived before maize, manioc, ground-nuts, and sweet potatoes were brought to the coast of Africa by the Portuguese and other European nations since the sixteenth century. The discovery of America has profoundly affected the later history of the Dark Continent. The houses in the Upper Congo villages do not differ materially in design or material from those already described on the Lower river. They are all rectilinear and oblong in shape, with slanting roofs and wide verandahs. At Bolobo they exhibit some skill in building, and are divided into several rooms or partitions. In the attempts at furniture, however, we meet with decided improvement over the Ba-kongo.432 A JOURNEY UP TIIE RIVER CONGO. Chairs and settees are hewn out of single blocks of wood without joinery (which art is unknown), and some of them exhibit grace of form and adaptation to the purpose for which they are made. Many pretty little things are carved in wood and ornamented with brass-work; pillows or head-rests are made, much like those used by the ancient Egyptians, and powder-flasks are hollowed out of soft wood and BA-TEKE CHAIR. decorated with burnt patterns made with a piece of red-hot iron. Examples of the pottery are here illustrated. There is no potter’s wheel in use. All the utensils are made in basket-moulds or shaped with the hand. I have already mentioned the ability these people display in artistic decoration, and their love of music is also worthy of notice. Besides the drum, they use the horns of Tragelaphus gratus, and other trage- laphine antelopes, as trumpets, from which a fineTEE PEOPLE OF TEE CONGO. 433 resonant sound is produced. The Ba-teke children, moreover, make trumpets from rolled banana leaves. For the discoursing of melody, they have a form of 1. POTTERY ON UPPER CONGO. 2. AN ANTELOPE-HORN TRUMPET. 3. A POWDER-FLASK. “ marimba,” an instrument of widespread range, which in principle is so many thin slips or keys of metal arranged along a sounding-board. When 2 F434 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. great twanged by a practised touch they yield very sweet sounds. For real beauty of tone how- ever, the five-stringed lyre on the Congo is remarkable, and the native musicians produce from this instrument melodies both quaint and touching. The pentatonic scale is the one in use, and the notes run thus : C, D, E, Gr, A, C, the fourth and seventh being omitted. Neither the Ba-teke nor the Wa-buma appear to be workers in metal, like the Ba-yansi. These A NATIVE LYRE. BA-YANSI KNIVES. latter people appear to receive their iron mostly fromTHE PEOPLE OF THE CONGO. 435 tribes farther inland, at any rate there is no sign of its being smelted from the ore near the banks of the Congo, although iron is present in the soil. The Ba-yansi beat out the iron when red hot, and fashion it into many shapes of knives, hatchets, and axes. They sell most of their knives to the Bateke and Wa-buma. BA-YANSI CHOPPER. AXE OF AUTHORITY BELONGING TO A BA-TEKE CHIEF. Most of the chiefs, especially among the Ba-teke use an axe of a particular shape (see illustration) as a sceptre, or sign of authority. This axe differs entirely from the ordinary chopper form of the tool in daily use, and is purely a ceremonial weapon, being quite blunt at the edges, and useless for cutting. It is always regarded as a sign of authority, and the actual 2 f 2436 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. weapon that is here illustrated belonged to De Brazza’s friend Makoko, before he was deposed. The population all along the Congo above Stan- ley Pool is very dense. Towards Bolobo there is scarcely a river-fronting space clear of villages, and Mr. Stanley reckons from fuller data that the entire population of the Congo basin may possibly amount to 49,000,000, or 55 to the square mile! These masses do not own one great chief or emperor. There is no analogue to the Muata Yanvo, or the negro kingdoms further north. Such chiefs as Ibaka or Mpumo Ntaba * may rule over a few thousand subjects, but ordinarily every village or settlement is a little, independent state. Much has been talked lately about the desirability of introducing some sort of political cohesion amongst these tribes—of inducing them to band together into one great nationality. This idea has been put forward on high authority, but I must presume to dissent from its advisability. What has hitherto made Mr. Stanley’s work so rapid and so comparatively easy has been the want of cohesion amongst the native chiefs; he has had no great jealous empire to contend with, as he would have had farther north or farther south. If one village declined to let him settle among them, the next town out of rivalry, received him with open arms. There has been no mot d'ordre, and this has enabled him to effectually implant himself in their midst. * Makoko’s successor.THE PEOPLE OF THE CONGO. 437 By banding the native kinglets in union—union which would inevitably turn- them with race jealousy against the white man, the entry of civili- sation into the Congo countries will be hindered, and this great work made dependent on the ca- prices of an African despot. The black man, though he may make a willing subject, can never rule. These people are well disposed in their present condition to receive civilisation, but the civilisation must come not as a humble suppliant but as a monarch. It must be able to inspire respect as well as naive wonder, and this is what the expedition as conducted by Mr. Stanley has succeeded in doing. To realise this, let us in conclusion consider the state of the Congo only seven years ago, and com- pare it with the present state of affairs. In 1876 the European merchants had penetrated no farther than Borna, where they were all established. There was not a single trading station higher up the river. No one knew anything of the country beyond Isangila, except that the natives were all cannibals. Then Stanley, after first descending the river, returned from Europe in 1879, and in 1880 com- menced his present work, which, despite the many natural obstacles in its way and the, at best, luke- warm sympathy of the African trading companies, has so far progressed on its mission that life and property are rendered secure wherever its influence has spread, and through its workings a European with the passport of Mr. Stanley’s friendship can438 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. now travel several hundred miles beyond Stanley Pool without the need of escort or fire-arms. The merchants of Boma, since Stanley’s advent, have founded fifteen trading stations between Boma and the falls at Vivi. There was not a single mission- ary on the Congo before 1879. Now there are three flourishing missions, the Livingstone, the Baptist, and the Roman Catholic, with many stations between Stanley Pool and the sea. The river Niari has been explored throughout its course, and a direct route traced between its mouth and Stanley Pool. Estab- lishments like Vivi and Leopoldville, which deserve to be called small towns, have been created, and other stations, numbering in all some twenty- one, have been founded; so that now, between Equator Station, at the mouth of the great Mobindu, and the coast, there is a distance of over 700 miles secured to civilisation, and offering no greater risks to the traveller than those attributable to the elements, or to the ordinary contrarieties of tropical rivers. Mr. Stanley has three steamers on the Upper river and a small fleet of lighters and canoes. The native chiefs are his active coadjutors. He everywhere keeps the peace, and is looked up to as the great umpire in regions where he was once a hunted, fugitive. In short, whichever way our sympathies may go—and as Englishmen we ought to sympathise with this splendid outlet thrown open to our com- merce—we must at least admit that the work is a colossal one, and that the man who has undertakenTHE PEOPLE OF THE CONGO. 439 it has the indomitable will of the Anglo-Saxon ; nor should we fail to remember that the King of the Belgians, as President of the African International Association, has an equal share with Mr. Stanley in the gratitude and admiration of the civilised world. While there are probably few men who could have been found to cope with the difficulties and perils of this undertaking in the way that Mr. Stanley has done, so nowhere, probably, does there exist a living philanthropist like Leopold II., who could from pure love of knowledge and civilisation open up a road across Africa for the benefit of the world, and endow munificently from his private fortune an enterprise for the good of future generations. That the present King of the Belgians will live to see the entire realisation of his grand scheme is improbable, from the very greatness of its scope, but, in the not far distant future, when Leopoldville is a prosperous town, and grateful in its prosperity to the memory of its earliest patron, let us hope that Leopold II. in marble may look forth from its sunny terraces and wooded slopes over the broad waters of the great river which he was destined never to behold in the flesh, but with whose opening to civilisation his name will be imperishably connected.A NATIVE OF THE LOAVEE CONGO.CHAPTER XVII. THE LANGUAGES OF THE WESTERN CONGO. Kongo—Ki-t^ke—Ki-buma—Ki-yansi.CHAPTER XVII. THE LANGUAGES OF THE WESTERN CONGO. . I conclude this work with a short glossary of the four lan- guages spoken on the Western Congo from the equator to the sea. The first of these, the Kongo, or Shi-kongo, is princi- pally compiled from the Kongo- English dictionary of Messrs. Henry Craven and John Bar- field, of the Livingstone In- land Mission, but I have added THE FETISH AND SACKED LANCE OF GANCHU444 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. certain words and what seemed to be slight correc- tions from my own note book. The remaining three vocabularies—Ki-teke, Ki-buma, and Ki-yansi, are entirely of my own compilation ; and these lan- guages, with the exception of a dozen scattered words of Ki-yansi in Stanley’s 4 Dark Continent,’ are quite new to philology. They offer many curious points for consideration, especially as re- gards their relationships to other members of the Bantu group. Each of these languages is fairly dissimilar to the other. Ki-teke and Ki-yansi stand closest together, and resemble but slightly the Kongo of the Lower river, or the tongues of the West Coast. Probably their place is more with the central group of Bantu languages. Ki-buma, spoken by the Wa-buma, stands as yet without near affinity to any known Bantu tongue, although, in common with Ki-teke and Ki-yansi, it is purely Bantu in character, and betrays no extraneous influence, such as the Portuguese has exercised on Kongo, the negro tongues on the Diwalla and the Isubu, or the Hottentot on fhe Kaffir-Zulu. In spelling these vocabularies I have not adopted, as I ought perhaps to have done, the phonetic system of Lepsius, because to most of my readers its signs and dots would require a separate explanation. I have used a sort of compromise for spelling these African tongues phonetically and simply. It is as follows:— , The consonants are all pronounced as in English,THE LANGUAGES OF THE WESTERN CONGO. 445 with the exception that ugh” in italics, represents the guttural sound of the Arabic “ gh&in” a sound resembling closely the French r grasseye, or the Northumberland mode of pronouncing the r with a burr. Zh, whenever met with, is pronounced like the French j, or our z in “ azure.” The vowels have their exact Italian sounds, occasionally accentuated by accents. a is pronounced as in 44 half.” a, a ,, 44 rather.” e „ “bet.” e, e „ „ “ fete, grey.” i 5? „ “ ravine” or ee in “ been.” 0 5? ,, 44 not,” 44 wrote.” 6 55 as a in 44 all,” or aw in 44 bawl.” 6, o-u 55 as o in 44 bone,” or ow in 44 bowl.” u 55 as in 44 full.” u 5 5 „ “ rule.” In all diphthongs each vowel sound is to be dis- tinctly heard : as a-i = ah-ee ; a-u = ah-oo. In most cases the accent is on the penultimate. In a few words, owing to mutilation, it is on the last syllable.A TABLE OF DERIVATIVE PREFIXES IN KONGO, KI-T^K^, KI-BUMA, & KI-YANSI. 446 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. m XI i—i W W P-4 W H t-H W s « , ' a o H • E cd , C3 a 00 i s o rH l c4 f rH I Singular. g CD Pm rH i . C0 , 2 i »d ^ i XI WO oi ^ 1 'w' rH . rH J id P rH vlo Plural. onal 2, Ba- 4. Mi- CD , o3 8 GO 10. (-) oi , rH Jj P bO Q CO m Pi CD Ph rH ES . , 7" ggiziA cd , 3 i gs id I=J •iU 05 T rH rH I rH CV. cv* rH ^ cv. ^ id rJhe numerals indicate the classes into which all Bantu prefixes are divided in Bleek’s Comparative Grammar,EXAMPLES OF THE ABOVE PREFIXES. TEE LANGUAGES OF TEE WESTERN CONGO. 447448 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. NOUNS. English. Kongo. Ki-teke. Ki-buma. Ki-yansi. A Adornment Adiekwena « • • Shemuyano Affection Ajie Age Nvu (years) Mivu (years) Kingame Alama (old age) Air Mpevi Animal Bulu ) Belo Antelope > Nkoko Ncha ... Nkani j Nka Ant Kimfwetete Ma-kami Anus Anto Ape hike wo Kima Arm (of body) Koko pi. moko Mio ... Leboko Arrow Ntota Mumburu Makora Aunt Dise pi. mase Nko Nkoko Axe Mpivi pi. zim- Ekuu Ezhumbi B Back Nima, pi. zi- Mingwo Mikundo Badness Yaibi Mubi Mbi Mobi Banana (fruit) Chiba Manku Manko? Nkomo Baobab (tree) Nkondo, pi. Mi-kondo^ Mi-kondo min- Basket Ntete Munto ... Itiba Bat Ngembwa ... Ingiomo Ngiemo Bachelor Mpivi Beads Zin-zimbo Mi-sha Mi-sa Mi-kole Beard Zindevu (in Ndevu Mfo Elole, Sali plur.) Bed Dibala ISTtaro Nta Ntaro Bee Nyumbula Likunzi Bell Diyongolo Itee Kentwe Gunga Belly Ndumo Ifuni Mwe Bird Nuni Nyonyi Anuni Blood Menga Makira Makila Malungu Body Nitu Nyuru Nyuru Njutu Bone Yisi Mafa Gikop/ioro Mafa Bottle Sangala Milangi Mbuo Milangi Bow Nkangi Ampia Wutaba mti Lekuta, Makula Bracelet Nlunga Milunga Mua Milunga Brains Tomfi Tuna Brass wire or Lusoka Bi-njanga Ikara Bi-njanga rods Bravery Kiakala Bolo Breast (woman’s) Diyeni Ma-biela Ma-biela Ma-biela Brook Kinsulu-sulu Mbwele THE LANGUAGES OF THE WESTERN CONGO. 449 English. Kongo. Ki-teke. Ki-buma. Ki-yansi. Brother Mpanzi Mwama Mboye # Ondegu, Nyangu loko Buffalo Mposo, Mpakasa Mpo Nyare Ngombu Burial-place Mampieme Ndjiumo Lewili Butterfly Lubembabemba Mfuranga Ukoti Buttocks Ma-taku Iwana mpuli c Gage Kalanga Engela B wen go, Canoe Bwatu Bwaro Lungwe Cat Budi Nganyu Gampama Gampamo, Mpange Chair Kiandu Mbala Mute Nkobe Chief Nfumu Mfumo Ntore Mukunji Child Leki-leki Mwana Mwana Mwana Chin Bevo Ilelu Wabo#7ui Ebeko Circumcision Ku-chira Obogho munsuri Moketa mun- shumba Civet-cat Nzobo Njuli Cloth Zimbongo Wiko Kipiu Bilamba Cloud Dituti Cawapini Cold Kiosi Mfula Mpio Mbunge Concubine Akalungwele Mwasi azingula Copper Bikuru Ikari Binjanga Corpse Nvumbi Mufwili Azaafwa Liwili Country Nsi Nchi Kise Nchi Cousin Nkaka Coward Nkuta Bwomo Akutula Cowry Gampuru Mb61e Mibele Crocodile Ngandu Ngwene Ngone Nkoli Crow Kwampo Nkene Kwampo Cup Mbungwa Nkeni D Darkness Pipa Miumpiba Osui-su Mukollo Darling Daughter Ujia Nkanka Elenge Dawn Mfinu-mfinu Nantongo Day Lumbu Ishuu Mpawenye Mikolo Death Kiafua Ah Saafwa Agwi Devil Ndoki Nkita Nkira Yunganga, Bi- rimu Dirt Nvindu Mataba Ntoro Masoto Disease Kulua Divorce Mabala mafi Dog Mbwa Mbwa Mbwa Mbwa ? Door Divitu Ijuu Mimonzo Mayi Dream Ndozi Ndole see verb 2 G450 A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. English. Kongo. Ki-teke. Ki-buma. Ki-yansi. Drum Ngoma Ngoma Ngoma Ngoma Drunkard Agwilimanu Dwarf Yakala Mufi-muii ' Ufu Ufe Mu-Kusi Dye Lomba Mwemu E Eagle Ngoazula Ukwangu Njuri Kumambele Ear Kutu Ma-chui (plur.) Itui Itui, Li-tuyi Egg Diaki Ike Kile Ike Elephant Nzo Njoo Nzo Nzoko Enclosure Kati Enemy Mbeni Yu sura Epilepsy Nganku j Eunuch Mpolo Muntsure Mpolo Euphorbia Ndiza Dilanga Evil Yaibi Mubi Mbi Mubi Excrement Tuvi Chibi Eye Disu Ishu Diu Lishuu, Disu „ lashes Nse Nse F Fable Kumoka Face Luse Nsu Falsehood Diambu Mpia TJwugha wenka Likuta Family Nkanalemu Bi-buti Famine Ikala Fat Mazi Udzuenene Mune Father Sa, Tata Tara Ita Sangu Fear Wonga Bwomo Mbangu Fever Ibaa Uzhoghe iba Mowewe Fight Nuana Yita Wan an a Etumba Finger Lembo Miliemu Mi glib Moshe, Misseyi Fire Mbazu Mba Mbo Mea Fish Mbizi * Nchwi Ntu Ncliui Flag Dimbu Nch an ga Flea Ngina (louse Nchina Mafa Ncliisa Flower also) Nvuma Mbumi Fly Nzinzi Linga Fool L6 I ■j ui Mukop/ioro Ilimu Foot Kulu (leg) Ita Lulu Likulu, Litambi Forehead Ndui Elengi, Mutu Foreskin Isulu Munshumba ? Forest Nfuida Mshuru Fowl Nsusu Nsusu Nkop/io Nsusu Friend Nkundi Mumbaana Ndigo Frog- Kimbondia Koro Fruit Yimporo * This word means food, meat, as well.THE LANGUAGES OF THE WESTERN CONGO 451 English. Kongo. Ki-teke. Ki-buma. Ki-yansi. G Garden Divia Nchenu Ghost Mufu Mufu Ilimu (?) Gift Ngolo Girl Mwana Mukaru Glass Ntare Gelia Tala-tala Goat Nkombo Ntaba Ntaba Ntaba God Gonorrhoea Nzambi Njambi Entere Nzambi Nzambi Grandchild Grandfather Ntekolo Nko Nkap7ia Nkoko Grandmother Nangami Grass Chichi Ncholo Mishiri Ncholo Gronnd-nut Nguba Njuu* Ntere Njuku* Guinea-fowl Nkaa Gun Nkeli Wuta Buta Mata Gunpowder Zinfula Mbaa (fire, heat) Mbo (fire) Meya (fire) H Hair Lusuki Mfu' Nzui „ (of the head) „ (of the body) Mfuu Ikee Nzozo Hand Koko Nzala (?) Mi she Hatchet Mpivi Hawk Diyimbi Ukole Head Ntu Muchwi Mutu Mutu, Mali Heart Nchima Mokolo Mukolu Muluku Heat Mungula Mbaa Mbo Meya Heaven Dizul u Kunzulu Unge Likolo Heel Lingi) i Echeno Hill Nzanza Mankiu Ikuli Nkeka Hippopotamus Ngvu • Mvubu Ntobe Ngubu Honey Nyusi Niu NagM Bwi Horn Mpoka, Masigd Masheke House Nzo Nzo Nzo Ndako Hanger Nzala Nzala Nzala Nzala Husband Nuni Mulume Molume Mobali Hyaena Mbulu Ibubi Ndu^ura-ndu- Gumbulu f I Idiot glimvx Ezliubi Indian corn Disa Ma-sha (plur.) Masa Masangu Insect Nvidi Moinyu Nkishu Iron Lengwa Mputo Mwamumfiri Mputu, Nzondo Island Sanga. Eshia Kisep/id Kisanga, Boke Ivory Mpungi Inshemo Mfu Mondzo * Njm and Njulcu also mean “ kidneys,” f Comp. Ki-t6ke for Jackal. 2 a 2452 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. 1 English. Kongo. Ki-teke. Ki-buma. Ki-yansi. Jackal Ngomburu Jar Mbungwa Mutiele Njuo Mpoto K Kiss Fibanga TJnunkara Mabele Knee Dikungunu Ibo Ibolongo Knife Mbele Mbiele Mpule Botale L Language Ndinga Obilandag/ia Jambi, Zambi Laugh Sevanga Ku-sheba Oshiele Bishesho Leg Kalu Milo Mfuru mill Likulu Leopard Ngo Ngo Ngue Ngoi Liar Lukuta Life Moiyo Light Kia Mafulu Lightning Nesezi Njele Lion Nkosi Mkwe Nkoshe Lip Bobo kia moa Ibole Gilili ghomia Lebebu Lizard Yala Nduli Munzunsele Nkutu (Monitor) Mbambi Lubambi Louse Ngina Nsisa Love M Magic Nkissi (sorcery) Ngili Man Muntu Mburu Muru Muntu Market Dizandu Eboko Nsui mpiu Liboko Marriage Ubagha molume (to take a man) Master Nfumu Mfumo Nkumo Mokunji Mat Teva Kitumi Manzi Meat Mbizi Mbizi Nturu Ebwele Medicine-man Nganga Nga Nga Mulo M idwife Mpala Mpala M ulima Milk Mamvumina Mabiele Mabiele Monkey Nkewo Kima Nkima Nkima Month and \ Ngondi Nchiu Ndindugdto Nchungi, Moon j Nsun gi Morning Nsuka Pale-pale Mpinu-mpinu Ntongo-ntongo Mosquito Lubu Ma-tubu (plnr) Nkutu Mother Mama, Mbuta Ngu sNna Nyangu Moustache Ndevo Ndevu Lule-lule Minjembe Mouth Nua Munwa Mia Munwa, MuyaTHE LANGUAGES OF THE WESTERN CONGO. 453 English. Kongo. Ki-teke. Ki-buma. Ki-yansi. N Nail (finger) Nzala Manjara (plur.) Kebaa Ma-njara Name Dizina Nkumo Edina Needle Ntumbu Nuo Ndo Lendongo Net Dikondi Mishia Mishia-mishia Ngoli Night Fuku Mpiba Ashue-sliu Mokolo, Mpoko Noon Ntangwa Mpamwamje Nose Lnzunu Azhnln Idzuln Nzulu 0 Oil Mazi Mali Mare Nchali Orange Dilalanza Ilalanza Ox Ngombe r Pain Tanta Udale mpwara Palm-tree Duja Mobira (Hyphoene) Muliwo Irebu (oil-palm) Mnliwo (wine) Malavu Malafu Malafu Malafu Parrot (grey) Nkusu Nkusu Nkusu Nkusu Path Njila Njia Peace Man do mafi (strife dead) Penis Mvia Mpulu Mpulu Nyama Pig Ngulu Ngumbili Ngombile Ngumbili, Ngulu Pine-apple Yintu Mbampuru Binasi Pipe Su Ibu Genwa Nkouongo, Nkanangi, Kisu Place Chini Mbwiru Plantain Dinkondo Inko Manko Plenty Kia-kingi Bikami Bi-i-i-i-! Bayiki Poison Ndikila Wuti Muti Wunganga Porcupine Ngumba Nkake Pot Luenga Muntiele Potatoes (sweet) Mb ala (?) Bishungu Pumpkin n Dilengi Mbulangapari Ngapare Nganzo Quietness Anapi Pi-i-i! Pi-i-i! Bblobo R Eain Nvula Ngawa Ngawa Ngawa Eat Mpnku Bikaba Mpugf/m Mpuku Eiches —sina (?) Mufuli Aganzimu Mufuli Eiver Nzadi, nzulu Njare Nzali Eoof Ludi, Mwanzu Nkenkele Isaendzo Shangkangu454 English. Saliva Salt Sea Semen Shadow Sheep Shoulder Sister Skeleton Skin Sky Slave Sleep Small-pox Smoko Snake Son Soul Spear Star Stomach Stone String Sugar-cane Sun Sweat Syphilis Testicles Thief Thing Thirst Throat Thunder Tobacco To-day Toe Tomb To-morrow Tongue Troth Tree Twin A JOURNEY UP THE RIVER CONGO. Kongo. Ki-teke. Ki-buma. Ki-yansi. Mungwa. Mate Mungwa Mpougwe, Mok- Mwanzo, Mbu Mputo Malibu Mavunya wa Kini Ajilajili Kimjini Dimeme Ma-meme (plur.) Mbata Divembua Mbunzi Viso Nkere Mboye Mkename Yisi a visi Mafvva Ikop7mro Lipfuba (all bones) Nkanda Ibana Kikobo Ikutu Dizulu Kuuzulu Ikuru (Lekolo? Muai Muintu Muru Heaven ?) Muntamba Tolo Ilelaaza Ku-tutuma(verb) Kingeya Maburi (plur.) Wenge Lekutu ( ?) Mwisi Mokuma mbu Muzhia Mijia Nyoka Ntare Mpili Mushwema Mwana Mwana Mwana Mwana Lunzi Dionga Mkolo Mazhuo Izliua Kongo, Likongo Mbueteti Mpulumwero Mwere Moto Ditadi Ndumo Itare Ma-bwa (plur.), Mpuo Wundigi Mbila Ndimba Mwisi Mishu Mishuo Nkuku Ntuba, ntaugwa M atere Itere Ndembe, Birisa Kyufuta Nchoro Mwanyi Yangala Ngala Ma-karra Ma-karra Ma-kata Mwivi Mui Muibi Lekwa Kilo Kina Kiloko Divwina Mpua manya Mpiame Mpusa Dilaka Inkiu Mure Nkingu Nvumo Njere Wabawa Njere, nkake Nfuama Ma-kaya (plur.) Ikaa Lekaya Wunu Bubu Bubu Lelo, Chachawa Nlembo Mbazi Mpieme Musua Mbare Lovi, lobi Ludimi Lilimu Lilimu Lilimu Dinu Minu (plur.) Minu (plur.) Minu (plur.) JSTchi Muti Muti Mute Nsimba Ngubambu Majia NgubambuTHE LANGUAGES OF TEE WESTERN CONGO. 455 English, Kongo. Ki-teke. Ki-buma. Ki-yansi. . u Uncle Urine Ngoboro Maslmba Maziba Nyangubwe Mia V s Vagina Virgin Voice Vulture (Gypobierax) Ndini Ndinga Liti Abuabwewe Idiono Ibiu Mujini- Ubirawe Ezhole Bukoli Ibild w War Water Week * Widow Wife (see woman) Wind Wizard Woman Wood 1ST vita Nlangu Lumingu Nkama (?) Mpevi Vganga Nkentu Lukuni Manya Mufwili Minkulu bali Mfula Mulo, muloko Mukaru Unwana Me Mukaru Kingwere Yga Mukaru Muti, Mfe Letumba Mai Lewili Mwasbi Mbunge Muloko Mwasbi Kanzu (?) Y Yesterday Year Zono Mimvu (plur. of Mvu season) Machu Muvu, Mvula Bosho, Bwane Ngawa (rains) Mikole Mivu ADJECTIVES. A Alike All Mpila mosi -onsono Ifaemo Bonso Ifaemot/Zu Jinso Lekula, Mpilaya lyiki B Bad Beautiful Black Blue Blind -ibi Mote, Mbote Mpyuki Mesu mifua (eyes dead) Mbi Mubive Jrnpiri Ipi Apfimiu Mubi Move Oletuu Mpiri Mimiti Mubi Mulamo Ekoko Mpiri * The week is divided into four days.456 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. English. KODgO. Ki-teke. Ki-buma. Ki-yansi. c Clever Nduka Mayere Mazhele Mayere Cunning 5> D Deaf Dnmb Fua matu (hear- ing dead) Di-baba Apfimachi Mukuknmi Matiu mafi (hear- ing dead) Matoi magui (hearing dead) F Fat Vonga Mali Makami Ozuwanene Mune-mune Female Nkento Mukari Mnkaru Mukari Few G -iki Mike-mike Elunkunkie Elenge; gabuyi Good -mbote -bwe -vuve -lamo Great -neni -nunu -numunen^ -nen£ Green H -nkunsu Ngaku -zaa Nkoko Hot Mbazu Mba Mbo Meya Hump-backed Nkuvu Nkuvn Ikap/ia L Little Ndwelu; Kik6 -nkenke, Mike, -mike Muki-mukie Moke; Mokemo M Mad Lo Yusuba Ilarre Male -akala -lnme -jiru -bale Many -ingi; kingi -kami Bi-i-i-i! -yiki N ■ New -iva; -va Wubwo -bwe Wubwe 0 Old -kulu; -nuna Elame Gekukuma Obika Other -anka Ikima Ki; Mori ki EshishuTHE LANGUAGES OF THE WESTERN CONGO. 457 English. Kongo. Ki-teke. Ki-buma. Ki-yansi. Q Quiet Anapi Pi-i-i! Dzo-o-o-o! Biu, biu R Raw Nkunsu Ibisho Kethva Ibisho Red -mbuaki Ibe G-elebile Ngindu; -leke Ripe -yelele; lubele -bie Gebio -sosola S Sick Mbevu -bielo Ozhogf7io Mputu Strong Ngolo Mpino Nsumo Yukuti; Okala Sweet Zenza Ebie Gebio T Thick Nkatu . -nene Gepaba Thin -kilikisi Mike-mike V Yain Ekwene , Ekwene w Weak Mpinu we Nsum’ we Ukutite (not strong) (not strong) White -mpembe Nduno Sase Bue-Bue; Binza Y Yellow Ndobo Ndobo Ndobo Young Mwana -keka Lekee Mpiu NUMERALS. 1 M5si Mo More Moko ; Loko 2 Ole -bole -pe -bali 3 -tatu -tatu -saru -satu 4 -iya -’nne -’nni -’nne 5 -tanu -tano -tano -tauo 6 -sambanu Shyem -shamo Motuba 7 Sambwadi Nshambu Kisale Nsambu 8 Nana Mpomo Inana Moambi458 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. English. Kongo. Ki-teke. Ki-buma. Ki-yansi. 9 Evwa Bwa Iva Libwa 10 Kumi Kumi Jomo Zhumo 11 Kumi i Kimosi Kumi na mo Jumi mori Zhumo na loko- moko 12 „ iole „ „ zhole „ pe „ ,, ball 13 ,, itatu ,, ,, tato ,, saru ,, „ satu 14, etc. ,, iya, etc. Maku'mole „ „ bine Makumi-mole „ inne ,, ,, ’nne Makwa bali 20 Mware 21 Maku'mole e Makumi-mole na Mware nag ha, Makwa bali na mosi mosi more moko 22, etc. ,, e iole, etc. ,, na zhole, etc. „ „ ve-pe bali 30 Maku' matatu Makumi-matiiu Msaru Bweli 40 ,, rnaya Makumi-manne Munni Yu-minezi 50 „ matanu „ nuitano Mutano Yu-mitano 60 ,, inasam- bime ,, mashyem Siiiamo Yu-mutuba 70 Lu so mb wadi „ mashyam Kisaali Yu-minsambu 80 Lunana „ mampomo Inana Luassi 90 Luvwa ,, mabwa Ioa Mubwa 100 Nkama Mkama Nkama Munkama 200 Nkama zole Mkama zhole Makama mipe Munkama mibali 300 „ tatu ,, tatu ,, misaru ,, misatu • 400 ,, aya ,, hme ,, mi-nne ,, min lie 500 ,, tanu „ tano ,, mi-tano ,, mitano 600 „ sambame „ shyem „ shiamo ,, raotuba 700 Lusambwadi luankama „ nsnambu ,, kesaali „ minsambu 800 Lunana dia ukama Mkama mporno Makama inana Munkama moamb 900 Luv wa dia nkama „ bwa Funda „ iva Munkama bwa 1000 Kami dia nkama, or Nzundi Nkutu; Funda Half Nlambu Mupa Kitini Ituma Quarter Kisulu Kifia^ka Mupa (?) First -vita -Kulange Eyambu (?) Second -nzoli Wakati Mbiza (?) Third, etc. -ntatu, etc. | -ngwele PERSONAL PRONC )UNS. Ntanti (?) I Mono ’Mine Mie Ngaye Thou Ingeya Nje Njuo Yowu; iyo; yeu He Yandi Nde Nde Yuna We Yetu Bin Virantso ? Bisu You Yenu Bee (thou and he joined) Baio (Ba-yeu, Ba-yo; viz., ‘ Thou ’ plu- ralised) They Yau Bo?Binu? I Bebaa Bangui (?) ‘ I ’ pluralised ?TEE LANGUAGES OF TEE WESTERN CONGO. 459 POSSESSIVE PRONOUNS OR PRONOMINAL AFFIXES. English. Kongo. Ki-teke. Ki bun]a. K!-yansi. Mine Ami In Ki-tehe, the possessive pronouns In Ki-yansi, the possessive pro- Thine Aim seem to be merely the personal His Yandi forms with the concord added— nouns and the Oar Etu as 4 Eshia Ki- -erne ’ my island, pronominal suf- Your Enu ‘Mfumo Mu-nie’ thy master, fixes are also Their Yau &c. merely the per- In Ki-buma, the same thing seems son al forms. to prevail, except that a form 4 -aku ’ occasionally makes its appearance for 4 thine,’ 4 thee.’ DEMONSTRATIVE RELATIVE PRONOUNS, ETC. This The concord pre- fix is used to express 4 this ’ -na (with pre- fix) Ndese ? Ndi That -na (u-nn, mi-f -huu Ndesegf/mu ? na, etc.) . \ -na These The concord j plural prefixes, sometimes re- duplicated, are used for these,’ also in certain cases abbre- viated perso- nal pronouns -na (with plur. prefix) Those -na (with plu- ral prefix re- duplicated as : Mama - na, Tuatu-na) -na (with plur. Who? ) Which? / prefix re-du- plicated) Nani ? Nani ? Nande ? What? Inki? Inki ? Mbi ? Nke ? Whose ? Nani with the preposition -a prefixed Nani with the preposition -a prefixed Who? \ -na, -o Same as Kongo Which ? / (Ex. Yandi wna as relatives yo) (‘He who broke it ’ [the . table]) !460 A JOURNEY UP TEE RIVER CONGO. ADVERBS, etc. English. Kongo. Ki-teke. Ki-buma. Ki-yansi. Yes Inga Ye No Ye; we We Ve; we How many ) How much > How ) Wove? Ikwa ? Kwe? ve, ufe ? Bigue Much When ? Kingi Ana; Inki? Mashu Kwe ? Masho ve ? (Times, how many?) Ebume ? Why? Inkiama? Where ? Kwevi ?; Kwe ? Ande? Ndelonko? ve; kasovana Here Ave; okwe Awu Pipa Jala bwa These Ovana; vovo; Uku Kukane Peno we (?) oko, etc. Yonder Kuna; Kunaa- Awuna-a-a ! Alekuna-a-a! Kuna-a-a! a-a-a Now Wau; Lelu With ; and; etc. -a, -o' Na Na